Location via proxy:   [ UP ]  
[Report a bug]   [Manage cookies]                

Changing Army Oral 00 Romi

Download as pdf or txt
Download as pdf or txt
You are on page 1of 228

MARINE CORPS U LIBRARY

CHANGING

3000020023

AN ARMY

AN ORAL HISTORY OF
GENERAL WILLIAM K DePUY, USA RETIRED

UNITED STATES MILITARY HISTORY INSTITUTE

AND
UNITED STATES ARMY CENTER OF MILITARY HISTORY
(

CHANGING

AN ARMY
L.

AN ORAL HISTORY OF
GENERAL WILLIAM E. DePUY, USA RETIRED

P
7

y
v
^

BROWNLEE AND WILLIAM J. MULLEN III


ROMIE

UNITED STATES MILITARY HISTORY INSTITUTE, PENNSYLVANIA

AND
UNITED STATES ARMY CENTER OF MILITARY HISTORY, WASHINGTON,
JAMES CARSON BRECKINRIDGE LIBRARY TRAINING AND EDUCATION CENTER MARINE COiiPS COMBAT DEVELOPMENT COMMAND 9SANTIC0, VA 22134-5050 r-s4s-

D.C.

"""

CMH Pub

70-23

For sale by the Superintendent of Documents, U.S. Government Printing Office Washington, DC 20402

MAJOR GENERAL WILLIAM


Commanding

E.

DePUY

February 1967)

General, 1st Infantry Division (March 1966

FOREWORD
The
U.S.

Army
E.

Military History Institute at Carlisle Barracks originally published

General William

technique

in

DePuy's oral history as a convincing example of this relatively new the historian's arsenal. It soon became apparent, however, that the

audience recognized in this interview a larger, more enduring value and utility. Here was an Army leader, a fighter, trainer, and thinker, imparting his wisdom and experience to the officer and NCO corps in his own words. The overwhelming demand from the Army's senior leaders and its school system for copies of the DePuy oral history quickly exhausted the original printing. It gives me great pleasure to publish the first Center of Military History edition of this important document.

The DePuy interview easily fulfilled the Military History Institute's criteria for oral history publications. It concerned a figure immediately recognizable to a large number of Army officers, one who had made a major impact on the development of the Army since World War II, and one whose career had spanned a period of significant change
within the service.

While these considerations remain valid, it seems to me that another element has emerged during the two years that Army leaders have read and discussed the DePuy oral history. Simply put, General DePuy's career demonstrates that one man can make a huge difference in our Army. General DePuy was commissioned from ROTC in 1941 and joined the 20th Infantry in time for the famous Louisiana Maneuvers. Subsequently assigned to the 90th Infantry Division, he trained and prepared with the division for its role in the liberation of Europe. In particular, the division's fight through the hedgerows of Normandy in June and July 1944 provided then Captain DePuy with a profound lesson. He saw soldiers suffer and die because of poor leadership or insufficient training. As a consequence he dedicated himself to the goal of leader development. His subsequent military career bore eloquent testimony to this dedication. Service on the postwar Army Staff involved him in decisions that dramatically affected training, doctrine, force-structure, and policy development. Later service in Vietnam allowed him to apply his years of planning and training in a combat situation. Finally, his assignment as the first commander of TRADOC gave him the opportunity to directly transform the

Army
It

in

the post-Vietnam era.


bit of

takes brains, hard work, dedication, and probably a

luck for

one man

to

directly influence a great military institution.

doing so left us a young officers, our Army's future leaders, words.


fullest,
in
I

and

DePuy blended these ingredients to the profoundly important legacy. My hope is that today's
will

read and profit from General DePuy's

wish to thank the officers who conducted the interviews Brigadier General William J. Mullen III and Colonel Romie L. Brownlee. My appreciation also goes to

Colonel Rod Paschall, director of the Military History


preparing the original publication and their cooperation
edition.

Institute,

and

his

staff for

in facilitating

the Center's

new

The views expressed by General DePuy are, of course, his own. His freely expressed opinions do not necessarily represent or reflect approved statements of policy or recognized positions of the U.S. Army or those of the Department of Defense.

WILLIAM

A.

STOFFT

Brigadier General,

USA

Chief of Military History

VI

ABOUT THE INTERVIEWERS


JK1||

"I

-:

COLONEL ROMIE L. BROWNLEE


Conducted as
part of the

BRIGADIER GENERAL WILLIAM J. MULLEN III

Academic Year 1979 Senior Officer Oral History Program, these interviews with General William E. DePuy, US Army, Retired, were conducted at the General's home in Highfield, Virginia, by Lieutenant Colonels Romie L. Brownlee and William J. Mullen III. The two interviewers, both students at the Army War College, had served previously with General DePuy and conducted extensive research on the General's background and professional career
prior to

conducting the three interview sessions. Their pre-interview research included a review of

pertinent unit histories, annual historical summaries, the official

World War

II

Army

histories

("Green Books"), pertaining to the General's service


that addressed programs with
familiar with the General,

in

the 90th Infantry Division,

monographs

which General DePuy was involved, interviews with personalities

and a review of other US Army Military History Institute senior officer oral histories that touched on the DePuy era. Additionally, news accounts, professional periodicals, and the Military History Institute's archives were also consulted. Finally, both interviewers participated in an oral history workshop prior to conducting the interviews with General DePuy. A native Texan, Les Brownlee graduated from the University of Wyoming and was selected as the Distinguished Honor Graduate of the US Army Ranger School after he was commissioned in the Infantry in 1962. After serving as an airborne infantry company commander in Vietnam during 1965, Colonel Brownlee returned to combat in 1969 as a battalion advisor with the South Vietnamese Airborne Division. Colonel Brownlee served as General DePuy's aide in 1973 while assigned to the US Army Training and Doctrine Command (TRADOC). Following his promotion to lieutenant colonel, Colonel Brownlee was selected for battalion command in Germany in 1978. Colonel Brownlee holds a Masters Degree in Business Administration from the University of Alabama. His decorations include the Silver Star with Oak Leaf Cluster, the Legion of Merit, the Bronze Star, and the Purple Heart. He retired from the Army in 1983, and presently lives with his wife, Nancy, and two children, Tracy and John, in Fairfax, Virginia. Colonel Brownlee is currently the National Security Assistant to John W. Warner, United States Senator from the State of
Virginia.

VII

Brigadier General William J. Mullen

III

is

the son of a distinguished

Plattsburg Barracks,
Infantry

New

York.

1959 graduate of West Point,

Army family and was born at he was commissioned in the


in

and was an

early participant in the

Vietnam War

first

serving there

1962. Returning to
in

that country again


Division then

in

1966, General Mullen

commanded an
in

infantry

company

the 1st Infantry


1972, General

commanded by

General DePuy. Promoted to lieutenant colonel

in

Mullen was selected for battalion

command

1975, and subsequently

commanded

the 1st

Brigade, 1st Infantry Division. General Mullen holds a Masters

Degree

in

International Affairs

from

George Washington
presently
is

University.

His decorations include the Distinguished Service Cross, the

Legion of Merit, the Bronze Star, the Soldier's Medal, and the Purple Heart. General Mullen
the Assistant Division

Commander

for Support, 5th Infantry Division (Mechanized),

stationed at Fort Polk, Louisiana.

VIII

. .

CONTENTS
Chapter
I.

Page

From North Dakota

to

Normandy

II.

Education of a Battle Leader

40 68

III.

Across the Moselle and Into Germany

IV.

The Need
Early

for

Change: Reflections on World

War

II

90
102
121

V.
VI.
VII.
VIII.

Education of a General Staff Officer

IX.

Days of the Second Indochina War Introducing Agility: The First Division Washington Transition: 1967-1972 Changing an Army

137

168 180 199

1985

AFTERTHOUGHTS

INDEX

205

MAPS
Number
1

Page

2. 3. 4.
5. 6. 7.

The Normandy Beachhead Development of the Beachhead


90th Division's Drive Across the Merderet River 90th Division Prepared to Attack Le Plessis

20
21

23
33

90th Division Drive on the Mont-Castre Forest


90th Division's Section of
First

34
37

Army's Front

Breakthrough, 25-27 July 1944

42 48 48
51

8A.
8B.
9.

The

Falaise

Gap

Argentan-Falaise Pocket, 12-16 August 1944


Closing the Argentan-Falaise Pocket

10.
1 1

90th Division's Advance to the Saar River

53

12. 13.
14. 15. 16. 17.

The 357th The 357th

Infantry Regiment's Attack Across the Saar Infantry

55
59

Regiment Poised

for

its

Advance on Maizieres-les-Metz

90th Division's Advance to the Moselle River


Third Army's Front on the Evening of 25 September 1944

60 60

The

Fighting for Maizieres-les-Metz

62

90th Division Crosses the Moselle River

64
65 69 70
132
of Responsibility

The

Battle of

Metz

18.
19.

90th Division Prepares to Crack the

"West Wall"

20.

21
22.

The German Counteroffensive in the Ardennes The Ho Chi Minh Trail Corps Tactical Zones and Support Command Areas
1st Infantry Division's

136

Area of Operations

.139
143 145

23. 24.

The

Battle of

Ap Tau O

Operation

ATTLEBORO

IX

ILLUSTRATIONS
Page
Major General William

DePuy Corporal William E. DePuy ROTC Cadet William E. DePuy Second Lieutenant William E. DePuy
E.

ii

2
4

4
6 6
9
13
13

20th Infantry Regiment on 1941 Louisiana Maneuvers

2d Cavalry and 92d Reconnaissance Company on 1941 Louisiana Maneuvers

Americans Training in England for Upcoming Invasion of European Continent Diagram of 1944 Infantry Battalion Organization
Diagram of 1944 Headquarters and Headquarters Company of an Infantry Battalion American Troops on a Road March in the English Countryside

15 15 18

American Equipment Being Stored

in

England

in

Preparation for the

Upcoming

Invasion

US

Headquarters for the European Theater of Operations

Landing at Normandy Beach

22 26 27 28 29

Hedgerow Scene Typical Hedgerow Defensive Positions Diagram of Typical German Hedgerow Defensive Positions M4A1 Medium Tank with Hedgerow Cutter Major General Samuel T. Williams Major General Raymond S. McLain Major General James A. Van Fleet Impact of World War on Normandy Villages Major General Eugene M. Landrum Addressing the 357th Infantry Regiment Typical German Defensive Positions German 20mm Antitank Gun German 75mm, High Velocity, Self-Propelled Antitank Gun Scenes of Destruction in the Falaise Gap Diagram of German Observation Pillbox Typical German Pillbox The Capture of Maizieres-les-Metz German 88mm "Rhinoceros" Tank Destroyer
II

32
32
32

36 40 43 44 44
50 56

56
61

67

Panzerfaust 60 Recoilless Antitank Grenade Launcher

67 73

357th Infantry Regiment Crossing the Moselle River

The 90th Division Crossing the Flooded Moselle River The 2.36-inch Antitank Rocket Launcher or "Bazooka" Typical View of the Dragon's Teeth Along the Siegfried Line A Typical Scene as the 90th Division Crossed the Moselle River for the Second Time Republic P-47 Mustang "Thunderbolts" North American P-51 Mustang Fighter
British

74
75 77
81

83 83 83

Supermarine

Spitfire

German Stuka dive-bombers on a Mission The Reichsbank Wealth Discovered by 90th

83
Division
in

the Salt Mines Near Merkers,

Germany 88

Page
Generals and Others Touring the Salt Mines

89 89 92
II
.

Durer Engraving Taken from the Berlin


Lieutenant Colonel

Museum

DePuy Receiving the Distinguished Service Cross Lieutenant Colonel DePuy Receiving One of Three Silver Stars Awarded During World War Major General William G. Weaver
Major General George Bittman Barth
Lieutenant General Orwin C. Talbott

92 98 98
100
100

General Richard G. Stilwell


Lieutenant Colonel

DePuy During

a Reprieve

from Combat

in

May

1945

101 101

Major DePuy as S-3, 357th Infantry Regiment

The DePuy Foxhole

110

A 106mm

Recoilless Rifle

and 3.5-inch "Bazooka"

111

General Maxwell D. Taylor General Bernard

113
113
I.

W. Rogers
Forsythe

Lieutenant General George

113

General
Colonel

Diagram of the Pentomic Infantry Division Andrew J Goodpaster


.

114
116
of the

DePuy Shown

Briefing the

Commandant

German

Infantry School in 1961

116

General William B. Rosson General George S. Blanchard


Special Forces and Vietnamese Soldiers During a

118 118

Combat

Patrol Into Vietcong Territory

119
120

ACSFOR

Organizational Chart as of July 1963

General Paul D. Harkins


General William C. Westmoreland

122 122 122 123


in

US Army Advisors Working

with South Vietnamese

Army of the Republic of Vietnam (ARVN) Conducting Area Sweeps General DePuy Encouraging Montagnard "Rebels" to Release "Prisoners"
General William C. Westmoreland

September 1964 129


138 147 150

Scenes from Operation ATTLEBORO Typical Scenes in the Rung Sat Special Zone Close Air Support

158
158
Fieller

A Typical NAPALM
Eric

Strike

Major General DePuy Presenting 1st Infantry Scholarship to Richard

166 166

Nunez Holds

His Scholarship Certificate


at

Major Generals DePuy and John H. Hay

General DePuy's Change of

Command Ceremony

167 173

Diagram of the Assistant Vice Chief of Staff's Office

M551 Armored Reconnaissance Assault Vehicle SHERIDAN The M561 1 /4-ton Gama Goat General Paul F. Gorman "How to Fight Manuals"
1

176 176

184
188

Bradley Infantry Fighting Vehicle with Bushmaster

194
201

Concept Based Requirements System

XI

CHAPTER
From North Dakota
to

Normandy

INTERVIEWER:
born
in

General DePuy,

we
fill

will

begin by asking about your childhood years, and


in

attempt to get some information to

in

the void

the historical records.

We know that you were


of

Jamestown, North Dakota. Could you tell us about your boyhood? What were some your hobbies and your favorite subjects in school, even before high school?*

GEN DEPUY:

was an

only child as

was my

father.

My

closest friend

was my

paternal

grandfather who was a Victorian romantic, golfer and hunter. My other companions were books. My father was of French Huguenot descent and my mother's family were Scotch-Irish from Canada. They were splendid parents in every respect. My family ended up in North Dakota because my grandfather was a doctor, and while he and his brother were on their way to the west coast, someone asked them to get off the train to treat an epidemic of some sort might add that my grandfather was, among in Bismarck, and they never got back on the train. other things, "Sitting Bull's" personal physician. Those must have been pretty exciting days. have always regretted that wasn't there. But, anyway, my father was a country banker. When was a young man, Jamestown was a very small town of about 5,000, on the prairie of North Dakota, down in a little valley out of the wind. It was populated almost entirely by Germans and Scandinavians, a few English, and an odd Frenchman; a very conservative kind of a community. It was also a very interesting area. It was a high-risk area plagued by drought, grasshoppers, and occasionally blessed with good crops mostly wheat. Some people made a lot of money, but most did not. In some respects, it still had a rather frontier atmosphere. Other than that, most of us grew up during the Depression, the onset of which out there was in about 1926-27. The agricultural depression came first, and then the crash of '29, so nobody had a lot of money. It's cold where we lived in North Dakota, with short summers and long winters. There was a nearby river where we did a lot of skating. was never particularly fond of school the academic part. have no way of comparing the quality of the schools up there to the quality of the schools elsewhere, but suspect that they were probably pretty good. The literacy rate in the Upper Plains States is perennially the highest in the nation. There was more of a European-type atmosphere there compared to other parts of the country. We did a lot of skating, a little bit of skiing, and a lot of game bird hunting, because there were literally millions of birds up there on the midcontinent
lived with us and
I I
I

flyway.

INTERVIEWER:
direction?

Did anyone

in

your family at that time, have a military background? Had you

given any thought toward a military career or toward the

Army? Was your

reading slanted

in

that

*This interview with General William E. DePuy, US Army, Retired, was conducted by Lieutenant Colonels William J. Mullen and Romie L. Brownlee on 19 March 1979, at General DePuy's home in Highfield, Virginia, as part of the U.S. Army War College/U.S. Army Military History Institute's Senior Officer Oral History Program.

GEN DEPUY:

Well,

my

father
in

was

a lieutenant

in

World War

I.

He

did not

go

to France.

My

any war. His father, my great grandfather, was killed in the Civil War. He was a captain of Michigan Infantry, and was killed at Cold Harbor in Virginia, on the peninsula. They were citizen soldiers, not career professionals. But, as a child, was interested in the history of World War I. read the whole set of books my father had, which was called, The Literary Digest History of World War * It was about 20 volumes and covered the war in great detail. really enjoyed them. The nearest military influence was Company "H" of the 165th Infantry, of the National Guard, in Jamestown.
grandfather never participated
I I

I.

Corporal William E. DePuy Squad Leader, Company "B"


109th Engineer Battalion 34th Infantry Division

INTERVIEWER: You
what were your

attended college at South Dakota State.

What was your

college major and

aspirations at that time?

GEN DEPUY:
South Dakota

Well,
in

what

might do
I

is

pick

up that

military thread a

little bit.

moved down

to

1935,

when

was

a junior in high school,

Dakota State College, which

is

right there in Brookings.


I

My

and then, went to college, South father had moved from the bank of

bank in Brookings, and joined the National Guard, as did all my friends in those days. We needed the money. It wasn't much money by today's standards, but any money was important in those days. Also, when entered College, ROTC was mandatory. Everybody was in it. The first two years you had to be in it, and then, the second two years were optional. So, you automatically became a private in the ROTC regiment when you started college, and then, was in

Jamestown

to the

*FrancisW. Halsey, comp., The Literary Digest History of the World War (New York: Funk

& Wagnalls Co.,

1919).

the Guard at the


year,
I

same
in

time. Then,
I

made that

choice, and
1940,

liked

the draft started

we had

to

came to move into senior ROTC in the junior And then, to carry the story on to the end, when choose between the Guard and the ROTC. Most of us dropped

when
it

the choice

very much.

that time

ROTC for obvious reasons. It's better to be a lieutenant. At squad leader, in Company "B", 109th Engineers, 34th Infantry Division. So, the choice between the two was easy to make. didn't distinguish myself academically in any way. didn't do very well in math. was going to be a banker, and follow in the footsteps of my father, which is, guess, not an unusual thing to
out of the Guard and stayed with the
I

was

a corporal, a

do. So,

took whatever courses


I

could find

in

that

little

college that applied, and there weren't


I

very many.

also took

some

engineering courses. But, anyway,


I

graduated with a
If it

BS

in

economics, which was the closest thing


the war,
I'd

could find to the banking business.

hadn't been for


I

probably have ended up


in
I

in

the banking business. During college the only sport that

got involved

team.
school

We
in
I

was hockey. played a lot of hockey, and we eventually had a little semipro hockey made a little pocket money out of that by playing around in a league that was located

mostly

southern Minnesota and eastern South Dakota.


I

We

had

a lot of fun doing that. In high


I

played football even though

only weighed 128 pounds. But,

played.

had the unusual


I

job of quarterbacking
I

my

high school football team from the tailback position. So,


call

had fun there.

would run the

ball

could

the signals that

let

me

run. That's hard to beat.

INTERVIEWER: Could you

tell

us something about what

Dakota State? For example, was there anyone there


Professor of Military Science?

ROTC was like in those days at South who may have influenced you, like the
ROTC.

You mentioned
it.

that you really liked

GEN DEPUY:
Army. One was

Yes,
a

really did like

We had some very interesting chaps there from the Regular


least half-Indian,

Major Ed Piburn. Ed Piburn was at

and

a fine officer; he

was

later became a brigadier Armored Division. We also had a man named Ray Harris who was quite portly but kind of ferocious and inspiring. He used to crawl around on the floor of the auditorium teaching us how to crawl. He would turn very red in the face because he really was beyond that. But, the man who inspired everybody was a colonel named James P. Murphy. Murphy was a fatherly kind of fellow with a very entertaining and wide ranging vocabulary with all sorts of little figures of speech that made him amusing to all of us simple chaps out there on the reservation. We loved him, and he inspired us all toward the Army. There's no question that he was a great recruiter and wanted us all to be in the Army. might say that almost entered the Marine Corps instead of the Army, because every year we had only one officer who was taken into the Regular Army. But, we usually had two who went into the Marine Corps. Now, that was rather typical up in the Plains. The Marine Corps recruited very heavily in the Upper Middle West, North Dakota, South Dakota, Iowa, etc. wanted to get the Regular Army commission, but lost out to an individual by the name of Bob Barthell, later a colonel in the Signal Corps. Then, two of us tried for the Marine Corps. The Marines usually selected two except for that particular year when there was only one commission available. Colonel, now retired, Stan Nelson of the Marine Corps got it. We had to go on duty first with the Army, and we were on the Louisiana Maneuvers when the telegram came through saying that he

married to a full-blooded Cherokee

marvelous looking woman. He


of the 10th

general and assistant division

commander

had been picked, and that


thing that ever happened.

hadn't been. Well,

Anyway, as you can

was heartbroken, but, in retrospect, it's the best see, was very enthusiastic by that time. really
I I

had been swept up with enthusiasm

for the military.

INTERVIEWER:

Did you select the Infantry as your branch?

GEN DEPUY:
changed

No, everybody at South Dakota State

was

in

the Infantry. There

was no
in

choice.
later

Everybody, even the engineering graduates, went into the Infantry. Barthell went
to the Signal Corps.

and

graduate, a

have been a

Chuck Wilson, who retired as a major general, was an engineer went into the Infantry and stayed in the Infantry. He would brilliant magnificent engineer. But, no, there was no choice.
engineer, but he
Is

INTERVIEWER:
that

there anything else that happened during those years, or any other person

you can think

of,

who

influenced you later?

GEN DEPUY:
I

Not

really.

The

officers in the cadet regiment

were the colonel and the


I

battalion

commanders; was the regimental adjutant in my senior year. was the captain of the Scabbard and Blade, which included a little social hazing. But, anyway, all of the military things appealed to me, and liked them better than did economics and other things. So, it was easy for me to decide
I I

to stay

in

the

Army

after the war. Furthermore, the

pay was

better.

w
;:>.'
i:.';.;^;.;:

:jm

ROTC

Cadet William E. DePuy South Dakota State College

General

DePuy as a newly
lieutenant.

commissioned second

INTERVIEWER: Your
reported there?

initial

assignment,

believe,

was

to Fort Leonard

Wood

with the 20th

Infantry Regiment. But, other than the

ROTC,

did you have any kind of officer training before

you

GEN DEPUY:
ROTC, and

No. There wasn't any

in

those days.

It

was assumed
II

that

we were

trained

in

relative to

everybody else
untrained.

in

the World

War

Army,

guess

we

were. But, by any

objective standard,

we were

INTERVIEWER:
Fort Leonard

So, after being commissioned following your graduation


lieutenant and a platoon leader?

in '41,

you reported to

Wood as a new second

GEN DEPUY:
we all

Yes. There were 25 to 30 of us,

think,

and

we

63rd Infantry, and the 1st Infantry Regiments.

We were divided
rifle

all went to the 20th Infantry, the between the three regiments and

immediately went, almost without exception, to

platoons.

INTERVIEWER: Then you went to Communications School


i

at Fort

Benning?

GEN DEPUY:

Yes.

reported
I

in

to the 20th Infantry


rifle

on June 25th, 1941 That


.

fall

we went on

the

we walked all the way to hundred five five miles back. We prided ourselves on never losing a man. There were some good things about that Army. Tactically, it was not proficient, but in many soldierly things, it was good. And, I'd say that learned more about
Louisiana Maneuvers.*

was

platoon leader. Incidentally,

Louisiana and back

hundred miles down, and

just plain soldiering

from

six

months

in

the 20th Infantry than

learned

in all

the rest of

my service.
I

commander. He later became a corps commander, Lieutenant General "Shrimp" Milburn. The battalion commanders of the 20th Infantry were World War integrated officers who, generally speaking, were tough and hazing kinds of men. But, they made you do things that are good, liking taking care of the men, and demanding that "nobody drops out," and so, nobody did. The soldiers were sufficiently terrified, so that nobody ever dropped out of that 1,000 mile march unless he went to the hospital. Tactics consisted of getting on line and advancing in rushes it was called extended-order drill. When came back from Louisiana, went to Communications School because had been selected to become the battalion adjutant. In those days, the battalion adjutant was quite a guy because he commanded the headquarters detachment, which was the same as the headquarters company. He was the adjutant, he was the communications officer, he was the pioneer officer, and he had the battalion sergeant major in his detachment, plus a battalion supply sergeant. The first lieutenant did all of that. In fact, he was the battalion staff. There was the battalion commander, the battalion executive officer, a battalion adjutant, and the companies, and that's it. Oh, incidentally, the adjutant was also the intelligence officer, and the S-1, the S-2 and the S-4.
Colonel Milburn

was the

regimental

could be mistaken about


is

this,

there might have been an S-3, but


still

don't think so. Incidentally, that

the

way

Soviet battalions are

organized

no

staff for operations. But,

he certainly was

everything else, to include the headquarters

company commander. So,


A

the battalion

commander

*For a discussion of the 1941 Louisiana Maneuvers see Jean R. Moenk, United States, 1935- 1964 (Fort Monroe: USACONARC, 1964), 47-62.

History of Large- Scale Maneuvers in the

A machine gun company from the 20th


into action while

Infantry

"under

fire" as part of the 1941 Louisiana

Regiment going Maneuvers.

The "old" 2d Cavalry and the "new" 92nd Reconnaissance Company joining forces during the 1941 Louisiana Maneuvers

wanted me
simple

to take over that job from a Lieutenant


I

Humphrey

a very fine officer. So, the


All

one

thing he thought

really

ought to

learn

was communications.

the rest

was thought

to be

or perhaps unimportant.

INTERVIEWER: Now, you


Barkley, Texas,

joined the 357th Infantry Regiment of the 90th Division, at

Camp

and you trained with that unit for over two years before it deployed to Europe and the European theater in March of '44.* We'd like to know what those two years were like in terms of the effectiveness of the training that the division received. What were the major training problems? Were they similar to those we face today? We have asked ourselves, "What would it be like to have a unit for two years and then take that unit into combat?"

GEN DEPUY:
Benning.
I

joined the 357th Infantry as a communications officer out of the school at

which was still in the process of forming up. In those days the regimental communications section had a first lieutenant communications officer and three second lieutenant battalion communications officers, each having little sections which worked with the battalions but belonged to the regiment. Later, the battalions got their own. But, in any event, started out being the communications officer for the 1st Battalion, but belonged to the regiment. After a very short period of time, became the regimental communications officer. And then, became what they called the liaison officer, but was really the assistant regimental S-3, one of several. think by that time was a first lieutenant. Then became the S-3 of the 1st Battalion. went back and forth once or twice as people came in who were senior to me and so on, but, generally, spent my time either as a communications
joined the headquarters

company

of the regiment

officer during

those two years, or

in

the regimental S-3 section, or as the 1st Battalion S-3. So,

that
I

was my viewpoint.
have to say something about the officers
later,

really

who were

assigned to the regiment.


in

I'll

say a

lot

more about them

but there

including the Regular officers,

anywhere which included the regimental commander, one


expertise on tactics

was no apparent

the regiment,

of the battalion

commanders, and maybe two, three, or four others, out of some 135 officers. No one had any experience in war. The regimental commander may have been in France, but in those days my impression was that the name of the game was to "soldier," meaning that there were a lot of little rules a lot of them good rules such as how to take care of your men, and "officers eat last," and such. There also was a lot of "rank hath its privileges" (RHIP), another name for hazing for which today you would be court-martialed. In my opinion, RHIP was an excuse for mediocre officers to take advantage of those junior in rank. At one time RHIP may have made some sense, but by the
time
it

spread out into an expansion army,

it

was

just a license to steal. So, there

was

a lot of

hazing.

The regimental commander, for example, when he talked to us, didn't talk about tactics, he talked about movements. have a theory about that. We were motorized by that time, and all the energy and imagination in the division was
tactics.
I

There wasn't much conviction about the

*U.S. Army,
1946).

History of the 90th Division in World

War

II

(Baton Rouge:

Army and Navy

Publishing

Company,
1945).

George Von Roeden, Regimental History of the 357th Infantry (Weiden, Bavaria: Ferdinand N. Buchdruckerei,

in how we could get a regiment mounted up in trucks, move down the road, not and get there on time. We spent months just learning how to do that, whereas, we should have spent months learning how to fight. Perhaps the reason for that was that the division commander, the regimental commander, and the battalion commander were comfortable with a truck movement, but they weren't comfortable with training for combat. In both cases the training

totally

absorbed

get

lost,

was procedural-mechanical.
With the advantage of hindsight it is clear to me now at least part of what was wrong. followed the Army Training Program. The so-called ATP was a time-oriented process. A spent so many hours or days on each subject. For example, 30 hours of field firing, 6 hours on
aid, and 2 weeks on platoon
it

We
unit
first

in

the attack. The goal or object

was
it

to complete the training

get

done! Never mind whether or not the troops learned anything. The process completely obscured
If

the product.

a soldier missed

first

aid training he

must make

up so that 100 percent of the

unit

went through the prescribed ATP. Performance-oriented training was not introduced into the Army until TRADOC did so in the mid-70s. The learning function was obscured and secondary to
the scheduling function.

Few took

training very seriously.

We

trained around

Camp

Barkley, Texas.

to the desert near Blythe, California

We went to the Louisiana Maneuvers. We went out Camp Granite. We exercised in the desert, then went to

Fort Dix, and then, on to England. When we were in England, before the Normandy invasion, we were in terrain not unlike that of Normandy, certainly more like Normandy than the desert was like Normandy. But, for some reason or other, we did not take advantage of that. It never seemed to occur to us that we were going to be confronted in Normandy with very poor visibility, and that this would create a control problem and a firepower problem. don't remember any of that being discussed at all. My guess is that that was not really unusual in the expansion army of World War
I

INTERVIEWER: would when it deployed?


I

like

to hear your

assessment of

how good you

thought the unit was

and by that time, had a lot of friends in it. My fellow officers and good friends were wonderfully young, bright, eager fellows trying to do their best. They were wonderful material from which to make an army. But, for some reason, we didn't take full advantage of that. One thing about the 90th Division was that its enlisted soldiers were older. In those days the draft used to go in cycles, and when we were filled, we were filled with older soldiers. They were around 25 years old. We had a lot of them 25 to 30, while some units were filled with soldiers 19 and 20 years old. That was regarded later, as
Well,
I

GEN DEPUY:
I

had no way of knowing

how good

it

was.

was

loyal to

it,

a problem by

some

people.

don't

know

if it

was or

not.

INTERVIEWER: Were
that

there any specific events or incidents that occurred during your training
in

happened

to stick

your mind as particularly good or particularly bad, that you retained

through the years, other than what you have already mentioned?

GEN DEPUY:
example,

Well, again, the emphasis

was always on

things that

we

could understand. For

we made

a lot of 25-mile marches,

because everybody understood

how

to

make

made it, or you didn't. You either had stragglers, or you didn't. And again, we had truck movements and written orders and communications all of the stuff that goes on above the fighting. Incidentally, this is not unknown in today's Army or anybody's army don't think it was anybody's particular fault; it was at any time. But, think it was worse there. the fact that it was the blind leading the blind.
25-mile march.

You

either

Typical English countryside training scenes as Americans prepare for the upcoming invasion of the European Continent.

which was really well-trained on the combat side was the artillery. The artillery is easier to train because it's very mechanical and mathematical, and they do very well. But, the artillery was good, and although it was an infantry division, it was the infantry battalions, companies, platoons, and squads that thought were poorly trained.*
part of the division
I

When we went to war that

INTERVIEWER:
British

I've

got

some

voids that

I'd like

to

fill

in

background

material.

Was there any

It would seem that the and French experience in France prior to Dunkirk, should have been available to the United States Army. Combat in the Pacific was characterized by small unit actions that would seem to have had some value in terms of lessons that could be taught. And, would suppose that by the time you were in England, there would have been some feedback from the North African campaigns. Was there any attempt to get any of that type of information to you at all?
I

attempt to obtain feedback from the fighting that had been going on?

GEN DEPUY:
back from the marching
fire,

Well, there were after action reports and lessons learned, but not very many, and

they didn't seem to be emphasized too much.


battlefront,

do remember one thing though, that was brought and that was marching fire. That became somewhat of a fad, and
I

you analyze it, an effort to maintain fire superiority during the assault. It's not a bad idea, assuming that you put it in the right context. They used marching fire as a method of attack as the sole method of attack. What they should have done, of course, was position the heavy machine guns and light machine guns and even rifle companies, so as to gain total fire superiority with small arms as well as mortars and artillery, and then, during the assault, use marching fire, which would have maintained the fire superiority. It reminds me a great deal of the experiments at the Combat Developments Experimentation Command (CDEC), in 1976.
recall,

as you probably

was,

if

At the time
attacking,

we were

doing the Parapet Foxhole or


light

PAR FOX

experiment
in

we

discovered that the

platoon that attacked with one squad and a

machine gun

the overwatch and two squads

was about

forty percent as effective as a platoon that

had two squads and

machine

gun suppressing and only one moving. The reason was that the fire superiority, as they called it in World War II, we now call it suppression, was maintained. As you know, the problem with infantry is that while you may get fire superiority through suppression, just at the time when you need it the most, during the assault, when the troops all rise up out of their foxholes or from behind a hedgerow and move forward, you lose it. So, the enemy then comes up out of his holes and starts to fire at you, and you lose the suppression. So, marching fire obviously was designed to overcome that problem, but somewhere in the transmission between the lessons learned and our unit, marching fire became the tactic through which you attacked. In other words, we lined up two battalions with two companies up and they went across the line of departure, using marching fire. It might have worked if the enemy was not well dug in, not well camouflaged, and very weak; but, if the enemy was professional, as the Germans usually were, was well-hidden, and was in very good positions, marching fire as often as not, just wasn't sufficient. We marched into their killing zones. We didn't learn about overwatch
suppression
until later in

the war.

*For a discussion of pre-invasion training or lack thereof, see G.A. Harrison, United States

Army

in

World War

II:

Cross-Channel Attack (Washington:

USGPO,

1951), 158-197.

10

INTERVIEWER:

Did the training programs include

live fire?

They included infiltration courses, live fire exercises, and overhead fire, all against The enemy doesn't shoot back, and so, you don't learn a whole lot, and of course, they were normally not done above maybe, platoon level, or company level at the most. Then, once in awhile we would fire the "mad minute" to impress us with our own firepower. However, the M-1 rifle, coupled with the rifle marksmanship program, worked to discourage active firing in combat by the average soldier. He was trained to shoot at and hit a target, but in combat, in the attack, he rarely ever saw a target. So, he was indisposed to shoot. The Germans, on the other hand, used machine pistols which were area weapons. That is, they sprayed the area ahead of them and achieved fire superiority which we now call suppression.
fixed targets.

GEN DEPUY:

INTERVIEWER:

In

the training program, did there

seem

to be a master plan that indicated


realize that

when

you would deploy, or did you just train up to a point and then Europe right away after all, and then drop back?*

you weren't going to

GEN DEPUY:
ATP, once
at

That's right.

What happened was

that

we went

through the training program, the

Barkley, which was culminated by a trip to the Louisiana Maneuvers. And, at some people came to test us during division exercises. remember they came from a corps commanded by General Daniel Sultan. They were supposed to pronounce whether we were ready or not. They rendered the typical Army report of the time, which said that the

Camp

the end of that,

I.

troops didn't use cover and concealment that they bunched up too much, and that our discipline

on the march was only fair, and things like that. In other words, they said what every report has always said about exercises. Well, then what happened was that we were motorized. So, then we

went after movement by truck. Concurrently, we went through some more ATP training and then we went to the Desert Training Center. So, we went through another ATP cycle at the Desert Training Center. So, would say that we went through two and a half or three ATP
zealously
I

cycles.**

Now,
right

there also

was

a lot of cadreing.

We

sent several cadres to other divisions which sliced

through our

command

structure.

might add about cadreing that

we

never sent our best

people, but

we

also never sent our worst people. People

who were

cadred were, almost without

exception, from the middle


us.

not bad enough to embarrass us, but not good enough to destroy

That was the game.


with the

INTERVIEWER: During this training were you equipped you had when you finally went to war?

same weapons and gear

that

GEN DEPUY:
light

Yes, essentially

we

had M-1s and Browning Automatic

Rifles

(BARs), and that

machine gun that

we

had

until

very recently, with the aerated barrel, the air-cooled light

*For an explanation of the Mobilization Training Program, and its revision during World War II, see Robert R. Palmer, Bell I. Wiley and William R. Keast, United States Army in World War II: The Procurement and Training of Ground Combat Troops (Washington, USGPO, 1948), 442-455.
**90th Division training at the Desert Training Center
is

discussed

in

Moenk, Large Scale Maneuvers, 104-105.

11

We had eight heavy water-cooled machine guns. We had 105 millimeter infantry cannon company. The antitank company changed from 37 to 57 millimeter towed guns, and the mortars were always 60mms and 81mms, so we really didn't change weapons during that whole time. However, we did pick up tanks in England, and tank destroyers in France.
machine gun.
howitzers
in

INTERVIEWER:

I'm curious about the troops.


a lot of

By now you had been with them


their

for

two

years.

You must have had

problems caring for the soldiers and

dependents. Apparently you

were not in a "we're going to war tomorrow" posture. Were people able to go home or were they all kept on base until just before you reported to Fort Dix? Were they allowed to go home on leave?

GEN DEPUY: Nobody knew when we were

going to go to war. So, the atmosphere was one

in

which the troops were being continuously told that when they finished their training, they were going to war. Now, mind you, the soldiers didn't have any dependents anywhere nearby. You know, the soldiers came from all over, and so did the officers. Unless the soldier happened to have lived in the neighborhood, his dependents, if he had any his mother and father in most cases, his wife if he had one were back in New England, or California, or wherever, so they were not a problem. And, we gave leaves. Not too many, but suspect that everybody got a couple of
I

weeks

a year,

and some of the


It

officers,

because they made a

little

more money, had


If

their

wives

nearby. But, the government paid no attention to them and there were absolutely no provisions

made

for families.

was

all

business, 24 hours a day.

You

lived in the unit.

your wife was

maybe you could sneak out from time to time. There were some short periods of time in which you were permitted to go on weekends if you had your family nearby. So, taking care of families was not regarded as a problem. It was wartime, and all of the
nearby, and you were an officer,
so-called people problems

and programs that

we

have now, were unheard of back then.

INTERVIEWER: Were you

living in tents at that time, or did

you

live in

wooden

buildings?

GEN DEPUY:
Camp

At Leonard Wood,

we went

into buildings, into barracks,

wooden

barracks. At

Barkley, Texas,

we went

into tents,

which were then converted

into

hutments, which were

tents with plyboard walls.

INTERVIEWER: Did down from regiment?

the battalion adjutant work with the communications people

who came

GEN DEPUY:
time
I

No. The

Army

reorganized between the time

was with the 20th

Infantry

and the

The 20th Infantry and the 1st Infantry had been brought down to Leonard Wood from Fort Warren at Cheyenne, Wyoming, where they had been stationed for a long time. Then there was the 63rd which had been cadred out of the 3rd Infantry at Fort Snelling, Minnesota. They were still in the old organization which was very light on staff and very high on command. But, when got down to the 357th Infantry, it was in its World War organization and had a staff at battalion and regiment. However, if I'm not mistaken, the headquarters company commander was also the S-1. There was an S-2, S-3, and S-4, and a separate communications officer by that time. At first the communications officer belonged to the regimental headquarters

was with

the 357th Infantry.

II

12

company, but later, he became part of the those little changes took place. (See Figures

battalion's
1

permanent

staff.

can't

remember when

and 2)*

INTERVIEWER: The

90th Division deployed to England between March and April of '44.

The
that
just

division's unit history said that there

was

a training
in

included attacking fortified positions, and fighting

program and that some of that hedgerows. That suggests to


thought out.
did that back

training

me

someone had thought about what you were going


gave us contradicts that and implies that the

to encounter. Yet, the

account that you

training wasn't carefully

GEN DEPUY:
training.
It

Attacking fortified positions

we did

that.

We also

in

the desert.

Attacking fortified positions


brave young

was a rather set piece type of thing. By the way, it wasn't bad was very practical. You buttoned them up with small arms fire and then some very

men went up
it

there with a satchel charge on the end of a pole


in

they called
it

it

a pole

charge

stuck

against the embrasure or


it;

Normally, that would take care of

young man. Our tactical training in about hedgerows and their effects on

went off. in fact, in war, it did take care of it. But, it required a good England was perfunctory. do not remember ever hearing
the embrasure, pulled the fuse, and
I

tactics.

HEADQUARTERS AND HEADQUARTERS

RIFLE

RIFLE

RIFLE

HEAVY

COMPANY

COMPANY

COMPANY

WEAPONS COMPANY

BATTALION MEDICAL SECTION

BATTALION TRAINS

COMPANY

FROM
SERVICE

FROM
REGIMENTAL MEDICAL

COMPANY

DETACHMENT
Figure
1.

Infantry battalion

BATTALION

HEADQUARTERS HEADQUARTERS COMPANY

CO HQ

BN HQ SEC

COM
PLAT

AM b PIONEER PLAT

ANTITANK
PLAT

PLAT

rm -B
MSG
CEN
SEC

HQ

WIRE SEC

RADIO

PLAT

AND
VISUAL SEC

HQ

^^^ S^^^

57-MM

57

MM

57

MM

Figure 2. Headquarters and Headquarters

company,

Infantry battalion.

'See Field Manual 7-20, Infantry Battalion (Washington:

USGPO,

1944).

13

rest of the paragraph on which states that not only did the division work on attacking fortified positions and fighting in hedgerows, but it also worked on road marches and obstacle courses. So, if the latter two are included on the same scale as the former two, one gets an idea of what was happening.
in fact,

INTERVIEWER: The

difference may,

be made clear by the

training

marches to stay in physical conditioning. We had a lot of trouble finding small arms ranges and grenade ranges. So, we tried to maintain our weapons proficiency and physical condition and do a little bit of tactical training, but in England that was very, very difficult because there wasn't any room. England was ready to sink with American troops. We did go over into Wales and found a training area where we were able to do a little bit of tactical training at about company level. That's the only place we conceivably could have done any work against hedgerows. do remember that the hedgerows, when we got in them in France, were a great surprise to us, and a great problem. They were to
in

GEN DEPUY: My memory of training

England was that

we

did a lot of road

everybody.

INTERVIEWER: How were the Americans

received by the British

in

1944?

GEN DEPUY:

believe that the British

already been getting

them

for awhile.

were beginning at about that time, to get the V-1s, or had The V-2s hadn't started. They had been through the Battle
I

some successes in the desert. Except for the V-1s, thought that British morale was pretty good, mean the general civilian morale, was pretty good. They were clearly dumbfounded by being inundated with so many Americans. Remember, they had that marvelous old saying about "overpaid, oversexed and over here". Our guys only made $50.00 a month, think. think it went from $30.00 to $50.00. That was a lot of money, especially if they
of Britain, and they had had
I I I

one time. They might spend up to three months' pay at one time. So, they could be kind of rowdy and, being a mix of everybody that you could find in America, some of them were rougher than others. Now, the British weren't too keen about that. But, they were very keen about having us over there to help in getting the war over with. So, on balance, they tolerated us as individuals and welcomed us as an idea.
spent
it

all

at

INTERVIEWER:

This question has to do with the turbulence

in

the unit.

Earlier,

you referred to and

the requirement to cadre other units, and you talked about the massive shakeup that the division

underwent in England. What is your assessment of the impact on the the other shakeups that occurred just before you went into battle?

division of the cadreing

GEN

DEPUY:

insignificant

went through approximately three training cycles, and the cadres were compared to wartime losses. So, if you can't take cadreing, you can't go to war. My
all

We

main retrospective thought about


positions of responsibility
didn't

of that

is,

that because

we

didn't

have any officers

in

who had

confidence

in their

war

fighting role, their tactical role,

we

have any quality control. Nobody


another.

ever got fired for anything.


it

No

one! So,

we

kept the

hopeless people side-by-side with the good people. And,

never changed. Everybody got to

know one
But,

We

really

we

also

knew

that

knew every there was a lot

officer in the

regiment by the time


in

we

got to .England.
of three

of

deadwood

the unit, including

two out

14

Marching, marching, and more marching. A typical scene throughout the English countryside as Americans prepared for the upcoming invasion.

felt

Half-tracks lined up awaiting the invasion of the European Continent. Some England was about to sink under the weight of American troops and equipment.

15

battalion

commanders. So, my problem was


guess,
if

that there

was no tough
lot

thinning out of the officers

who

should have been eliminated before they got a


I

of people killed. And, that can only

you have experienced officers who have standards and they expect. Unfortunately, we didn't have such people.
happen,

who know what

it

is

INTERVIEWER: With
due to

regard to the leadership failures, the two that you referred to, were they

a lack of technical

competence

or of courage?

you know, the 90th Division was studied for years at Fort Leavenworth as an example of the impact of leadership on unit performance. In this respect the 90th was unusually weak going into the war. It recovered, but in the process, thousands of good men were lost. When General McLain took over after about six or seven weeks of combat he told us that the soldiers of the 90th were just as good as the soldiers in any other division but that they had been poorly led. That was an understatement of monumental proportions. In the first six weeks of the battle in Normandy, the 90th lost 100 percent of its soldiers and 150 percent of its officers. In the rifle companies that translates to losses of between 200 and 400 percent. Those losses compare with the worst of World War I. In this same period two division commanders were relieved. In my regiment one regimental commander was relieved in England and another in Normandy. The one relieved in England returned to the regiment and was killed within two days. Two battalion commanders also were and one ran away and was then relieved. The consequences of all this leadership failure could be predicted. My regiment simply did not perform notwithstanding the heroic efforts and tragic losses among the lower ranking officers and the bewildered troops. Much the same picture applied to the whole division in terms of
relieved,

GEN DEPUY: As

performance.

INTERVIEWER: Where
Reserves?

did the

Army

get these officers, from the National Guard or the

GEN DEPUY:
unqualified for

The

division

and regimental commanders were regular

officers.

command

in battle.

close to being totally incompetent as

The commander who took the regiment to He knew nothing about an it is possible to be.
failed attack.

They were clearly Normandy was as


infantry

regiment.

He was

erratic to the

extreme. Three or four times he ordered the regiment straight

ahead

into a repeat

performance of a

He

will

never be forgotten by the survivors. Of

the three battalion commanders, one

was

a graduate of the Military

Academy

he was brave
National

but had a personal problem; one

was

a Reserve officer

who had

insufficient inner strength to lead

troops and face battle; and the third one

was

a despicable

punk from the

Illinois

Guard

he had given ample evidence of

his character

continuously during the two years before

Normandy. Upon issuing his order for the first attack of the war he went to the aid station, turned himself in and was evacuated. He was pursued by the authorities and reduced to enlisted rank.

16

The value system in the 90th done their grisly work.*

Division did not identify

and eliminate these

officers before they

had

INTERVIEWER:
any spot, be
it

In

Vietnam

know that you always had an

vacancy caused by a casualty or commanders were changed, apparently within a short period of time, did the regimental commander have any idea of who to put in, or did it just sort of happen? Did he just sort of reach
a

who was ready to step into by something else. When these battalion
idea about

down and

get lucky?

How did

he handle the replacement of battalion commanders?

had severe problems with the regimental commander at the same time. But, were picked we were desperate for good men. The 1st Battalion was taken over by a lieutenant colonel named Ed Hamilton who is still in the Washington area. He was very good and very brave. He lost an eye at Metz. The 2nd Battalion was taken over by a good man named Ward who was wounded and replaced by a school teacher from Sioux Falls, South Dakota, named Ben Rossow, who was also a good man. The 3rd Battalion was taken over by John Mason who later commanded the regiment. He was the regimental S-3 when we went to England and to
better people

GEN DEPUY: We

good man. So, we went from three disasters to three good, but relatively untrained, men. They learned on the job. From then on, things began to look up. Then we brought in a good regimental commander as well. Colonel, later General Bittman Barth took over the regiment after having been the 9th Division's Chief of Staff. He was a lifesaver.
France, and a very

INTERVIEWER: What

part did

you play

in

the planning for

Normandy?

GEN DEPUY: Obviously not much since was only a captain. But, do have one story perhaps worth telling. In April of 1944, was a regimental assistant S-3. The 90th Division headquarters borrowed me to go to London with "Hanging Sam" Williams and Major Ed Hamilton, the Assistant G-3, on a "secret" mission. It turned out that we were to make the arrangements for all
I
I I

of the shipping to take the 90th Division to

Normandy. The 90th was the follow-up

division

on
in

Utah Beach behind the 4th Division, which made the assault landing. Anyhow,

we

arrived

London, stayed

at the

Grosvenor House, and went to the Selfridge Department Store on the edge

where Headquarters, European Theater of Operations, US Army (ETOUSA), was located. The store had been moved out and hundreds of desks, telephones, and US Army people had moved in. In April of 1944, it was sheer pandemonium. We started at the top with a major general and after two frustrating days, had worked our way down to an elderly major of the transportation section of the Quartermaster Corps. His desk was right smack in the middle of the five acres of floor space and indistinguishable from all the rest except for one thing this major, whose name believe was Button, seemed to be the only one who knew anything about where all the ships were, and which ones we might have. say "might" advisedly. As you would expect, "Hanging Sam" lost interest at this point. He wasn't about to deal with a minor player like Button. So, he went off on his own business. We met at night at the Grosvenor. Ed Hamilton then went back to Birmingham, and was left alone at the working level.
of Mayfair, by Marble Arch,
I
I I

*The general

quality of field grade officers,

and battalion commanders

in particular,

during this period,

is

discussed

in

Palmer, Wiley and Keast, The Procurement and Training of

Ground Combat Troops, 466-469.

17

20 Grosvenor Square, London U.S. Headquarters for the European Theater of Operations

The
load

first

step

was
in

to select the ships, then prepare the unit loading

lists

with the ships. Sounds easy?


will

To my

and lastly, match the amazement, Button said to me, "Here are all the
lists
I I

May. Which ones do you want?" said didn't have a He said that some ships were much larger and better than others and that because had arrived before the representative of the 2nd Division, might as well take my pick. So did. picked large ships. The 90th had about nine ships in all. The poor old 2nd Division had about 30 because all the big ships had been taken by the 90th by me. What a
ships that

be

English waters

in late

clue and asked for his recommendations.


I

system!

The last step was the most interesting. was taken to see a brigadier of QM-7 in Whitehall. He was the mastermind behind all of the transportation planning. In peacetime he was an executive of Cunard lines. He sent me to see a group of Merchant Marine captains who had been commissioned in the British Army to prepare loading plans. They worked in a basement a block away from Selfridge. For five days joined them around a huge round table on which they had the
I I

and cargo spaces. For each piece of American equipment they had a wooden block prepared to scale length, width, and height which they would place on the drawings and number. It was my job to advise them on the sequence of debarkation and to make sure that a howitzer also had a prime mover, etcetera. Mind you, we only had five days and had
blueprints of the ships' decks
I

only the most general knowledge about the division's plans at the

Normandy end.

In short,

we

transloaded from the ships to landing craft off the beach.

To end

this story

it

worked! These

same merchant
certain.

captains, there

were about eight that


I

had done the loading plans

for North Africa, and,

remember, were the selfsame chaps who believe, for Sicily, but on that point I'm not so
I

18

There

is

something

classical
it

about

this story. After

all

the grand plans are drawn and the

generals have had

their say,

devolves upon

some

half-trained, half-baked captain to

"do

it". It's

a small miracle that anything

"works".
the regiment actually land
in

INTERVIEWER: On what day did

Normandy?
one that General

GEN DEPUY: We landed at


Talbott
safely.

noon on the 8th of June. One

of the regiments, the

their ship was sunk. Fortunately, the troops were able to get away was in, was sunk They were supposed to be the first regiment in. They were going to come in on the afternoon of D-Day, and we were to come in the next day or two, which is what we did. [See

Maps

and

2,

pages 20 and 21]


the beach?

INTERVIEWER: What were the conditions on

GEN DEPUY: The

4th Division had cleared the beach.

They landed
in

the beach, so everything


the beach or bombing.

was

little

off kilter, but

we came

on the wrong part of nevertheless. There was no fire on


partly

We went across the causeways. We were to go into an attack position just

when an advanced recon party got up to the Merderet River, the 82nd had a part of a regiment already across. There was a bridge across the Merderet at the middle of a long causeway. It was a very difficult place to get across, particularly in the daytime. The Germans had some high velocity guns which were sighted on that bridge. was the S-3 of the
across the Merderet River. Well,
I

went up with one or two other people to pick out the attack position across the river. We got across this bridge and picked out an area on the edge of a little cluster of houses by the name of le Motey. Then we took the troops up and across the causeway and into this attack position. We launched our first attack early on the morning of 9 June. By the way, the troops were jittery and opened fire on imaginary snipers while in the attack position. [See map 3, page 23]
1st Battalion. Later in the

afternoon of 8 June,

INTERVIEWER: Were you

motorized at this time?

GEN DEPUY:

No, but

it

didn't

make any difference


on

Normandy was a
backs?

foot war.*

INTERVIEWER: What
infantryman?

did the troops have

their

What was

the basic load for an

GEN DEPUY:
attack.

The

first

thing

we

had were fatigues that were impregnated against chemical

These fatigues were fixed up so that if the enemy used mustard gas it wouldn't penetrate. Also, you couldn't sweat through them. So, they were really awful hot and, God, after a few days, you could smell soldiers a mile away. Finally, they decided that there wouldn't be a chemical attack, and we got out of the impregnated clothing it was the greatest relief. It was almost the greatest relief in the war. They carried a blanket and a shelter half, which they didn't need,
Omaha Beach, Omaha Beachhead (6 June-13 June
*For the situation on
see U.S.

1944) Washington:

War Department, Historical Division, American Forces in Action Series: USGPO, 1945). Reprinted by the Battery Press, Inc., 1984.

19

THE NORMANDY BEACHHEAD


14

JUNE

944

llllllll
f^

Front LINE

German units

10

MILES

Map

The Normandy Beachhead

20

Map 2 Development of the Beachhead

21

Landing

at

Normandy Beach, 6 June 1944

22

90th division west of merderet


10-13
Positions
of

JUNE 1944
Forward
9
10 13

Elements
June June June

2400, 2400, ,WA\WW\V 2400,

Map 3

90th Division's drive across the Merderet River

23

ammunition, grenades and pyrotechnics, extra bazooka ammunition, and lots of extra machine gun ammunition. Every rifleman came in with a little extra which they dropped in the assembly
area, plus mortar

ammunition.

When

they got off the ships, they were loaded because they

weren't expected to go directly into an assault, and they didn't. So,

we

brought a

lot

of stuff

when

we came

which we dropped in the final assembly area. It became sort of the first reserve of might add that think we still had some of that ammunition when the war was over because, as you know, the infantry in World War didn't shoot much small arms ammuniton, except the machine guns. So, that was about it.
in,

ammunition.

II

INTERVIEWER:

Did they carry rations?

They had K-rations in those days, which looked like a brick, but not the C-rations. C-rations in those days were the next step up. The assault ration was a candy bar. It was a chocolate bar. The artillery ate B-rations. Most of us also carried an escape and evasion kit, and a little map, which everybody later wore as a scarf. They were marvelous silk scarves with a map of
the Cotentin Peninsula on them.

GEN DEPUY:

some other survival equipment. have forgotten everything the kit contained, but there were some halizone tablets, a small compass, a fishhook, and a couple of other things like that, which, of course, nobody used. So, that was what we went
also had
I

We

in

with.

INTERVIEWER: And, assume you had


I

gas masks?

GEN DEPUY: And gas masks.


INTERVIEWER: How long did the gas masks or did they dump them along the way?
last.

Did the soldiers keep them

all

through the war

month and then the assumption was made that there wouldn't be a gas attack so they turned in the gas masks and the impregnated clothing. There were a few gas scares in Normandy. Sure, it was just smoke, white phosphorus or something like that, but there were several occasions when the troops thought that they were
They kept them during the
first

GEN DEPUY:

being gassed and yelled "gas," and then ran away.

INTERVIEWER:

Did the soldiers have entrenching tools?

GEN DEPUY:

Yes, they had entrenching tools.

INTERVIEWER: Once you

crossed the

started to fight, did you run into

and got into your attack the hedgerows right away?


river

position,

and the

division

GEN DEPUY:
attack.

Yes. Most of

Normandy

consists of small fields

pastures and gardens

to

surrounded by sunken roads and divided by hedgerows. Let

me

say something about our

first

We

were

astride the road to Gourbesville near Amfreville.

The

regimental plan

was

24

attack with one battalion on each side of the road, and one battalion, the 2nd Battalion,
1st Battalion

in

reserve.

ahead with two companies up and one in The reserve to follow in center of sector. Each of the forward companies lined up two platoons abreast with two squads on line in the most classic formation out of the book. The artillery preparation was fired with the 105mms in fairly close along the hedgrows and the 155mms a little deeper. The
the
left.

was on

We attacked

straight

mortars fired at the

hedgerow. After about 10 minutes of fire the battalion moved forward.


first

When

the lead companies crossed

came under very heavy small arms fire and were caught in an any of our troops fired their weapons after the first few minutes. When the attack stopped the Germans threw a heavy barrage of mortar fire into the first and second small fields between the Line of Departure and the forward line of troops. Casualties were very heavy. We had walked into his killing ground. After 30 minutes the lead companies came back to the second hedgerow and that was it. The other battalion had only slightly more success but was also repulsed. An effort to move the reserve company around the left flank resulted in a single file movement up a sunken road into some German machine gun fire which terminated the
the second or third hedgerow they

open

field.

do not

believe that

first

attack of the 1st Battalion, 357th Infantry

all in all,

a dismal affair.

more days the regiment continued its attack toward Gourbesville. On the 14th of June, at 2020 hours, elements of the 3rd Battalion worked around the right (north) flank and entered the town, but were forced out the next day. By 2240 on the 15th, the 3rd Battalion had recaptured
For five
Gourbesville. This

was

the

first

substantial objective seized by the regiment. But,

it

cost the lives

of hundreds of brave junior officers

and

soldiers. This

was

a great bloodletting without

much
it

to

show

in

return. Consideration

was

given to the idea of breaking up the division and using

as

replacements but fortunately, that course was rejected and the division eventually pulled
process of seasoning and natural selection.

itself

together through on-the-job training and the slow emergence of fighters and leaders through a

INTERVIEWER: What tactic finally evolved

to

advance through the hedgerows?

work was done on trying to analyze the way the Germans defended. We finally did figure it out. The Germans would assign a squad to a terrain compartment. In other words, one series of hedgerowed fields like checkerboards. The Germans would put about two men on the first hedgerow, usually near the corners. The next hedgerow back would be their main position, and the third hedgerow back would be their reserve position. So, when you started the attack, the first two guys would knock off one or two of the attackers and slow things down. Then you had to go over the top of that hedgerow in the face of the main position. You suffered more casualties, and normally, that ended the attack. [See Diagram, page 28] The troops would straggle back, and you would end up taking just one hedgerow. That was typical. Now, if you happened to carry the second hedgerow, the whole German squad would drop back to the third one. As far as we were concerned, we rarely ever took the third hedgerow. Eventually, what we tried to do was to figure out how to suppress this system with indirect fire. We put the 60mms on the first hedgerow, the 81mms on the second hedgerow, the 105mms on the third hedgerow and the 155mms back on the roads and reserve areas and then we tried to

GEN DEPUY: A

lot of

25

ensure that the attack would have enough impetus to simply carry through the whole thing.

Toward the end of the campaign, we made one or two such attacks successfully.* But, what we finally learned, which is what all seasoned soldiers finally learn, is not to attack them where they are. The way we cracked those positions was simply by finding a hole somewhere around the flank. Find a hole, get through that hole and get in their rear, and then the whole bloody thing would collapse. Then you'd have them in the open. That's the kind of thing wished we had learned during the two years we were training in the United States and during the three months we were training in England. wish someone had told us that simple fact don't attack them where they are strong, but try to find a weak spot and go through the weak spot. Of course all of this was in the field manuals, but for whatever reason, it wasn't transmitted to us, or perhaps more honestly, it didn't sink in. We learned it the hard way and from then on, until the end of the war, all of the good commanders fought their battles by looking for a way around the enemy; they practically never went straight forward. Every time we had to go straight forward, we took high casualties as, indeed, we will in our Army today, if we train our people to take the hill straight on. The thing to do is to go around and behind the enemy, and then they will have to come out.
I I

A typical hedgerow scene

*For a description of this campaign see U.S. War Department, Historical Division, American Forces St-Lo(7July-19July 1944) Washington: USGPO, 1946. Reprinted by the Battery Press, Inc., 1984.

in

Action Series:

26

&
4fe&
..'

*
:

:-;^---

"

Hedgerow country clearly favored the defender. One never knew for sure just what was on the other side.

27

Typical

German hedgerow defensive

positions
in

were

always mutually supporting and organized

depth.

28

INTERVIEWER:

Did you have tanks with improvised clearing blades on the front?

The rhinoceros. Yes, we had some, but they were only marginally successful simply because the hedgerows were often too thick even for those devices. A lot of the hedgerows were very high; some of them were six, seven, and eight feet high. They even had trees growing on top of them, and if you went down inside of them you would find that it was a mass of roots, great huge roots of great huge trees. No tank was able to get through the big ones. The tanks could get through only the little ones. If the hedgerow was only two or three feet high, then those tanks could go through. The idea was to break through that second and third defensive would say that we had some success in doing that, but it's awfully difficult terrain for tanks. line.
I

GEN DEPUY:

M4A1 Medium Tank equipped


was used

with a hedgerow cutter

for breaking through

hedgerows.

INTERVIEWER: But, for the trooper, it must have been like scaling a wall. Every time he wanted to move into the field on the other side of the hedgerow, he would have to climb up and over a six
to eight foot hedgerow.

29

GEN DEPUY:

Yes, and you can imagine

how

the trooper must have

felt

going over a hedgerow

and coming down onto a stage out in the complete open, with the enemy just behind the next hedgerow. Now, they didn't want to go across the middle of that field that's the last thing they wanted to do. So, what the troops tried to do, almost always, and almost always with bad results, was to work along the hedgerows that were perpendicular to our front. And, time after time, we would get a platoon caught with all of the soldiers lying head-to-toe along the side of a hedgerow.

INTERVIEWER: Could

they crawl through the middle?

GEN DEPUY: You mean through the middle of the field?


INTERVIEWER:
the hedgerow?
I

don't

mean through

the middle of the

field,

but through the middle of this wall,

hedgerow and then going through the middle of the field, they would go over the hedgerows at the corners, and then try to go right up along the perpendicular hedgerows. It's human nature to want to be next to something and not to be exposed in the open. So, the Germans would dig right through the hedgerow and have a little hole that they could see and shoot through, and then, they would just fire right down the hedgerow and catch a whole column of soldiers crawling forward.
No.
I'm trying to say
is

GEN DEPUY:

What

that instead of going over this

INTERVIEWER:

Did they use mortars effectively

in

support of those tactics?

They did. They used mortars very, very well. The minute we would cross that first hedgerow, the field would be filled with mortar fire, and if you ever got past that one, the next field also would be filled with mortar fire, as well.

GEN DEPUY:

INTERVIEWER: Could you overwatch from

your hedgerow?

do that very well. You see, one of our training deficiencies was that almost all suppression was done by indirect fire weapons. Very little suppression was done by small arms. Occasionally, we would use our heavy machine guns. People thought first about mortars and artillery, then heavy machine guns, and finally, light machine guns. Really, they didn't think much about using riflemen for suppression. They just thought of using riflemen for maneuvering and sharpshooting. The M-1 rifle was a precision weapon but there were no precision targets. This problem was not confined to the 90th Division. You have read SLAM Marshall and know that even in the 101st only 25 percent of the troopers fired.* And, we only had
didn't

GEN DEPUY: We

eight heavy machine guns

in

a battalion. So,

it

didn't

work very

well.

We

didn't

do

direct fire

suppression very well

in

my outfit until the

latter part of

the war.

INTERVIEWER:
*Fora discussion of

Didn't you shoot the bazookas at these things?

this

problem see S.L.A. Marshall,

Men Against Fire (New York:


30

William Morrow, 1947).

GEN DEPUY: They did occasionally. They did shoot the rocket launchers at the corners once we found out that the corners were where they'd be. And, sometimes that worked. Then, of course, the Germans would try to position themselves so that they were not quite in the corner.
INTERVIEWER:
Did you run into mines? Did the

Germans mine the hedgerows?

They would put booby traps out in front of the hedgerows, and then they'd mark the gaps. They didn't mark them so that we could find the gaps, but they'd know where they were. So, there were mines, and there were booby traps. We would lose a lot of people just trying to go over a hedgerow.

GEN DEPUY:

INTERVIEWER: Having
relief

discussed the hedgerow fighting,

I'd

now

like

to get your version of the


first

of Major General Landrum,

who commanded

the division during the

few days

of the

Normandy campaign.

GEN DEPUY: General Landrum was the second division commander in Normandy and the second to be relieved. You know, really was at a very low level so don't know all of the things that happened, but think his relief stemmed from the fact that the division didn't perform very
I
I

by not performing well. Under the why. circumstances I've described, think you can see think the other regiments did a little better than ours, but don't think they did a whole lot better. That may be unfair for me to say, because wasn't there. So, let me just say that the division certainly didn't achieve its objectives, and it didn't contribute a lot to the winning of the battle in Normandy during the first few weeks. Landrum was not visible to the fighting troops; certainly at battalion level and below, he wasn't felt. The man who was felt was "Hanging" Sam Williams. And, that's a tragic story because "Hanging" Sam was fired. They got the wrong man. "Hanging" Sam Williams was the assistant division commander, and he was with us all the time. He was very helpful and a very brave, and powerful man, as everybody found out later. He had been with the division while it trained in the United States and really was the only man who ever impressed me as being a soldier with experience. He was with my regiment at Beau Coudray where we did very poorly and took a lot of casualties. Apparently, when he went back to the division command post, he was accused of siding with the troops against the division commander. So, he was relieved.
well.

The regiment

that

was

in

certainly contributed to that


I

INTERVIEWER: Who

relieved

him?

GEN DEPUY:

Landrum. And then Landrum was relieved shortly thereafter.


the 30th of July; yet, he

INTERVIEWER: So, the relief of General Landrum took place around had only taken command of the division around the 12th of June.

GEN DEPUY: Was


INTERVIEWER:
been relieved

it

on 30 July?

Was

it

that late?

That's

when McLain took

over, the 30th of July, but I'm not sure

if

Landrum had

earlier

than that.

31

GEN DEPUY:

All right.

INTERVIEWER:
about the

In

that fighting

around Beau Coudray


I

relief of Landrum. Actually, what want to McLain and Landrum. So, just to review the record, there was very fierce fighting in the hedgerows and past the hedgerows. The 1st Battalion of the 357th, was sort of a lost battalion for a couple of days around Beau Coudray and the fighting had reached the point where the engineers were fighting as infantry, and the cooks and drivers were being used as individual replacements. From all accounts, it would seem that the other divisions were having to do the same thing. The 82nd, the 79th, and the 83rd Divisions weren't making much more progress than was the 90th. The fighting went on around the clock. It was just attack, and be attacked, then attack, and be attacked again. think one of the regiments, the 358th, suffered 52 percent casualties in just one attack, the attack on the island. The fighting seems to have been very, very tough. would guess that the attack on the island led to the relief of Landrum. It was about then that somebody must have made the decision to relieve him. But, here's a man who came down, took command of the division and had about six very bad weeks. Point blank, the question would be, did Landrum have a chance to impose himself on the division; did he really have a chance to take charge or was the train going so fast that it was perhaps beyond any man's ability to grab hold of it and do much with it? [See Maps 4 and 5, pages 33 and 34]
I

and again, these are more questions determine are the differences between

GEN DEPUY:
all

Well,

suppose
I

all

of that

is

somewhat

true.

The
in

division didn't distinguish itself at

during that period.

think that Landrum's chief participation

the campaign

was simply to
in

take

the plans drawn up by the division G-3, Dick Stilwell (one of the finest soldiers
just order the

the Army), and

regiments to implement them.

orders." There wasn't any active battlefield

was "don't leadership. He


It

tell

me

your troubles, just follow


visit

didn't

come around and


in

the

regiments or the battalions, or talk to people and find out what the problems were. So, the
division didn't

do very

well.

As

a result, they got rid of

him and brought

McLain. They did have

some good

generals around, McLain being one, and

Van

Fleet being another.

V-

Major General

Major General

Major General

Samuel

T. Williams

Raymond

S.

McLain

James A. Van

Fleet

32

r"

FIRST
2

ARMY ZONE
July

1944
METERS

ALTFTUCe

IN

L_
10

!:

HI&ih
tso

50

!00

200

L-

12
ules

Map 4

90th Division prepared to attack Le Plessis

33

Map

90th Division drive on the Mont-Castre Forest

34

INTERVIEWER:

believe that

Teddy Roosevelt,

Jr.,

was

selected over McLain to


in.

command

the

division but he died of a heart attack before

he could be put

GEN DEPUY:

Yes.

guess Bradley

finally said that

they didn't want to break up the division and

would have been a terrible thing considering the sacrifice of the soldiers and junior officers. It's bad to break up a unit. What you want to do is make it well. Give it leaders. The soldiers are always the same.
I'm glad they didn't.
It

INTERVIEWER: At
on about the 16th

same time that this was going on, you changed of June, when Colonel Barth took command.
the

regimental

commanders

GEN DEPUY:
Sheehy was

Well,

we changed commanders

twice.

What happened was

that

when John

became the spare colonel. Every division carried a spare colonel. That was interesting because all three regimental commanders knew that there was a guy sitting there waiting. That colonel's job was to just mosey around, stay current, and be ready. So, Sheehy, who had been the regimental commander for a couple of years, was shunted aside by the colonel who then was relieved after a terrifying week of almost total failure. They then sent Sheehy back down to take over his old regiment again. Well, can you imagine anything worse than that? When he came back down to look at his regiment it was decimated. By then was the S-3 of the regiment, because Mason had gone down to take over 3rd Battalion. Colonel Sheehy was in a daze. He just couldn't believe what he found. We were being ordered to make another attack. Colonel Sheehy, with a glazed look in his eye, just walked out of the CP, found his driver, and said, "Drive down the road to Gourbesville." Somebody said, "You can't." But, he told his driver, "Go." To this day, we don't know whether he did that because he was desperate and couldn't stand it any longer, or if he didn't know the situation, or if he was out of his mind, or just what drove him. They just drove down the road right into the Germans. Then Barth arrived. don't remember the exact dates; it all happened very rapidly, within a matter of a
relieved in England, he then
I I

couple of weeks.

INTERVIEWER:

Colonel Sheehy

was only

there three days before he

was

killed.

He came

in

on

the 13th of June, and

was

killed

on the 16th.

GEN

DEPUY:

Right.

You

see, he got

down

there just long

enough

to find out

what the

conditions were and issue a couple of orders, and then he drove off into the

enemy

lines.

INTERVIEWER:
seemed
time.
I'd

After Colonel Barth took over, the battle of Beau Coudray took place. That

to be a very intense action with a lot of casualties.

You were the


battle.

regimental S-3 at that

be very interested

in

your recounting that particular

you could look at a 1:5,000 or 1:10,000, or even 1:2,500 map, and we had some of those, you would see that the road that led straight south into Periers from St. Jores, went between a swampy area on the east and the Foret de Mont Castre on the west. Between the high hill and the swamp was the village of Beau Coudray, in the vicinity of le Plessis.
Well,
first

GEN DEPUY:

of

all,

if

35

narrow bottleneck. You couldn't go through the swamp, and our boundary didn't let us go through Foret de Mont Castre. What we tried to do was go straight ahead through the town and make a shallow envelopment across a shoulder of the Mont Castre. And, for
So, there
a very

was

however many days it took, we fought to get through the bottleneck on the road to Periers. In all my comments you must understand that was removed two echelons from the company battles. It was a good vantage point but was not personally a part of the endless, bitter, grinding combat at the fighting edge. Had been, would surely not be reporting as am today. [See Map 6, page
I I I I I

37]

Anyway, we went on down into that battle with the 3rd Battalion on the right and the 1st Battalion on the left. The 3rd Battalion managed to get into the town and "K" Company actually got across the main transverse road that went through the town and off to the right, and up to the top of Foret de Mont Castre. The Germans counterattacked; they brought up a bicycle battalion among other things, and brought up some parachute troops, and one of the companies of the 3rd Battalion disappeared. The 1st Battalion was on the left and there wasn't much room. The 2nd
Battalion

was

in

reserve.

Pretty

soon

we committed
it

the 2nd Battalion around through the


in

adjacent regiment on our right and tried to get


unit

up on the slope of the Foret

order to have the

the
of

come down on Beau Coudray from the west. The battalion got down into this thing we called "ladder," which was an open terraced area, and was stopped maybe 500 yards from the edge

Beau Coudray. The Germans received additional reinforcements and launched another counterattack and this time the 1st Battalion was chopped up. That's when we threw in a can't remember one day from the next, battalion of cooks and bakers over on the extreme left. but the record will show how long the battle lasted. But, the regiment was in very bad shape at the end. It really lost its integrity, and the 1st and 3rd Battalions didn't have the kind of cohesion it
I

took to mount a meaningful attack.

The

fierce fighting took a

heavy

toll

on Normandy

villages

36

Map

90th Division's sector of

First

Army's front

37

At this point must say something on behalf of the junior officers and soldiers of my regiment. These poor devils were sent to us through the replacement system and often went into combat without a chance even to meet, much less know, the men with whom they fought. Many died never knowing what it was all about. These are the men to whom we professional soldiers owe a great debt. They were the real heroes. But, we don't even know their names. What a tragedy. The brutality and stupidity of those days have affected all the rest of my professional life.
I

INTERVIEWER: The
166
killed.

unit history states that in six

days of fighting there were 851 casualties, with

GEN DEPUY:

That's right, about three hundred casualties per battalion.

INTERVIEWER: And,

believe

it

also indicated that this


In line

is

when

there

were 13

straight days of

battle with almost no rest or sleep of any kind.

with that, General Patton once remarked

that soldiers can attack for three days with no sleep.

exceeded

that.

However, it appears that you certainly Based on your impressions, was that about the most that the soldiers could take?
Well,

know when they went past the breaking point, but can tell you for to mount an offensive action after just a few days of battle. After that, orders may have been issued to attack, but no attacks took place. They may have been leaning forward in the foxhole but the disorganization was sufficiently high and morale was
I

GEN DEPUY:

don't

sure that the regiment lost

its ability

sufficiently low,

so that nothing

really

happened. Infantry leaders were

totally

exhausted and

in

was a pervasive feeling of hopelessness. The troops withstood some counterattacks but as far as movement forward, there wasn't any. Once the attack of the 2nd Battalion coming down from the right flank bogged down, that was the end of the unit's offensive capability. do remember vividly how that whole battle ended. We made the terrible mistake of putting the regimental CP in a little town called St. Jores. We were right at a main road junction and on the night just before the Germans withdrew, they fired up their stockpiled ammunition. They had a couple of large caliber guns; don't know how big they were, 150 to 203 millimeters, but anyway, they dumped everything they had on that road junction. We were there all night long, and all night they did it. We were feeling very sorry for ourselves, but the next morning, when we woke up, we discovered the enemy had withdrawn from our front. Typical German doctrine by the way very
daze. There
I

methodical.

INTERVIEWER: In that fight, the regimental history indicates that "Charlie" and "King" Companies repulsed 14 counterattacks accompanied by tanks during the day. Can you describe the kind of tempo that we are talking about in such fights?

my guess is that what they talking about what you We are not three assault guns. maybe, two or were talking about was would visualize as a large tank attack. There might have been a Mark IV tank or two, but in all probability, what happened was that the Germans used some self-propelled 76 millimeter assault guns combined with their airborne infantry. They were better trained and they maneuvered. They

GEN DEPUY:

Well,

wasn't there with "K" or "C" Company, but

38

were professionals. They simply suppressed and moved, suppressed and moved. They gained fire superiority, and then gobbled up chunks of those companies up there, which, by that time, probably were not returning fire.

INTERVIEWER: Now,
would
indicate that the

if

there were 14 attacks, and again, I'm looking at the unit history, that

Germans came
it.

another place to

come

of ground and trying

and hit to hang on to


in

and hit, and then perhaps, went back to figure out again, as opposed to coming in and actually biting off a big piece
in

GEN DEPUY:
talking about,

think that

when

reports are

coming

in

from company

level,

which

is

what we

are

attacks. So,

you have to realize what kind of a report you'll get. All probes are considered to be guess is that of the 14 attacks, five, six, or seven of them were merely the Germans looking for a hole. They were probing for the flanks. And, they were pretty good at that.

my

They probably
let

also ran their assault

guns up a

little bit

from time to time, and

fired while probing.

There were probably only two or three rather large attacks.

When

say large attacks, by the way,

me

tell

you, I'm only talking about 200 or 300 people at the most.

Some

of those large attacks

might have been as few as 50 to 100 men.

INTERVIEWER:

Did they usually include

artillery?

GEN DEPUY: Some


lot

artillery,

but nothing

like

we

had.

Some

mortars,

some

assault guns,

and

by the Germans. hand grenades or potato mashers.


of small
fire

arms

lot

of

machine

pistol fire, a lot of

maneuver, and some

INTERVIEWER: Was
or
if

this a

standard German tactic?

If

they were driven from a piece of ground,

they had people attacking them would they very quickly mount a counterattack of
try to stop you, or drive

some

weight and

you back?
that they
just

GEN DEPUY:
to hold that

Yes.

little

cork

The reason they were counterattacking at Beau Coudray in a bottle. If you ever saw it on a map, you'll see that it

is is

wanted

an incredible

bottleneck.

INTERVIEWER: Now, was this

part of the Falaise

Gap?
is

GEN DEPUY:
there,

No.

If

you look

at this

map, there

the Foret de

Mont

Castre,

and

right across the

base of the Cotentin Peninsula, facing straight south,


if

we were right and we were

you looked across there, there was a river that went across most and there were these huge, swampy, inundated kinds of areas. When you looked at the terrain there was just one way through. So, the Germans kept counterattacking to hold that bottleneck. The Germans were very doctrinaire about other things, too. They always counterattacked before they withdrew. They fired a lot of artillery. They hit you very hard and then they would withdraw. You could count on that.
attacking straight south. But,
of the way, there

was

hill

or two,

39

CHAPTER

II

Education of a Battle Leader

INTERVIEWER:

imagine that the regiment, and probably the division, were

at a pretty

low ebb

following that fight.

What occurred to

get the units back on their feet?

Well, let's see, first we went through Beau Coudray, then south. The 358th had the island and then the breakout took place at St. Lo after the carpet bombing. on that episode The people on our left made the breakout. We were on the west side and the 1st Division and others in the V and XIX Corps made the breakthrough near St. Lo. Soon, the whole front collapsed in front of us and we were given orders to move. We were part of the new Third Army. Suddenly, we were moving and we were taking a few prisoners. We didn't have to fight much, and we moved down behind an armored division to Avranches. We did a little fighting near St. Hilaire-du-Harcouet. Then, we broke out with the

GEN DEPUY:

Mans, and then north, toward Argentan.* That was the breakout and, of course, by that time, General McLain was in command. We had confidence in McLain. And, he visited the troops. We saw him often. He knew what troops could do, and he told them that they were okay, but that the division's leadership had been bad. And, he was right!
mission of going
first

to

Mayenne, then

to Le

Major General Eugene M. Landrum addressing the officers of the 357th Infantry Regiment during a lull in the activity.

*For a thorough discussion of the breakthrough see Martin Blumenson, United States Breakout and Pursuit (Washington: USGPO, 1961).

Army

in

World War

II:

40

So, what happened?

We had some successes.

Sure, they were easy successes, but everybody

needs success.
itself.
It

Human

beings, individually or collectively, need success. And, success feeds on


until

by the time we got to Le up toward the Falaise Gap, toward Argentan and Alencon, we were beginning to feel that we were soldiers. In Normandy the division lacked pride because it had had no successes of which to be proud. Certainly my regiment didn't. The only thing we were proud of
breeds confidence, and confidence breeds more success,
started

Mans and turned and

was

that

we somehow
in

had stuck

it

out. That's a negative thing, but,


still

you know,

we

took a

perverse pride

the fact that

we were
I

there. But, that's not

enough. So, McLain loosened


to

things up and then circumstances provided victories; the victories provided confidence, and the

confidence

made
it

we needed

for a good division. think that probably happened more than most. [See Map 7, page 42]

dozens of

divisions, but

INTERVIEWER: You mentioned


recommended

earlier

that

General

Bradley's

staff

at

one
in.

time

had

that he consider breaking

up the

division. Instead,

he put McLain

Supposedly,

came in. However, Colonel Barth indicated that to his knowledge, no regimental commanders were relieved, nor were any battalion commanders in his regiment. In fact, he only knew of three battalion commanders being relieved in the entire division. Were you aware of anything happening at that time?
there were 16 field grade officers relieved after McLain

GEN DEPUY: The


officer

only thing that happened

in

our regiment

was

that our regimental executive

McLain had was, "No executive made an assessment and got rid of those who couldn't take over. And, you are right, by that time we had good men commanding the battalions. Major Ed Hamilton, a real fighter, was commanding the 1st Battalion; Major Ward, a cool, tough customer, led the 2nd Battalion; and John Mason, the best commander in the regiment during the war, had the 3rd Battalion. And, our regimental commander was super. So,

was

transferred.

He was

a very nice guy, but the rule that

officers

who

aren't fully capable of taking over." So, he

you see,

we

had the makings of a good regiment even before McLain got there.
this

INTERVIEWER: By
CP when

time you were the regimental S-3.

How

did

you do your job as the S-3


required to stay
in

given these changes of battalion and regimental

commanders? Were you

the

the regimental

commander was out?


varied.
I

GEN DEPUY:
came
he
to

back.

was brought up to Then Barth came in. Now, he was an


Well,
it
I

the regiment about one day before


artilleryman.

Sheehy

infantry regiment before, so he really wasn't sure of things.


is still

He had never commanded an Buddy Ryder was the S-2. By the way,
have to
rely

a major general

believe, over in Europe. Barth just told us, "I'm going to


I'll

very heavily on you on technical matters.

take care of the

And, that was a wonderful thing. leader, and he understood people very well. But, from a technical and tactical standpoint, from then on did the planning, the drawing of objectives, determining boundaries, coordinating with the artillery, and talking to battalion commanders to get their views before we put out orders. had, in other words, a very marvelous opportunity to be an operations officer for a man who
keep
straight."
I I

me

command, but you're going to have That made us feel good. He was a great

wasn't an operations

officer.

41

Map 7 -

Breakthrough, 25 -27 July 1944

42

INTERVIEWER: Were

there things that the

Germans

did during these particular operations that


led

you haven't mentioned already that stuck with you? Are there some things they did that adopt some of your philosophies on defense?

you to

First, was impressed with the positions that was impressed with the skill and the care that they took in finding positions which had cover and natural concealment. They were almost impossible to see and yet, they afforded fields of fires exactly where they needed them in order to stop us. In other words, their fieldcraft was super, and you may remember that in the 1st Division, spent a lot of time on that. My favorite battalion in the 1st Division really was the 1st Battalion, 26th Infantry, because they did more of that than anybody else. George Joulwan and Jim Madden
I

GEN DEPUY: was


German

impressed with several things.


I

the

infantry soldiers constructed.

really

put

in

imaginative positions wherever they went. That idea caught

fire

with the soldiers of


I

what think infantry should do. took that lesson with me to the 8th Infantry, the 30th Infantry, and the 1st Division, to the dismay of some people, but, nonetheless, that was a pet pigeon of mine. And, that's where
that battalion
I

more than

it

did with the others.

They were doing

precisely

got

it.

German
were

individual firing positions

Typical

German machine gun


far right
is

position.

and very difficult to locate, even when practically right on top of them.
well constructed

At the

the entrance

to a shelter with a heavy log roof


for protection against artillery fire.

The second thing that learned was about the depth of German positions. We just had one line. The Germans had a little zone defense so that they had elasticity and resilience. You could not punch through it very easily. They didn't do things in a linear way. They took pieces of terrain and knit them together into a position from which they were able to fire in all sorts of directions. They used the terrain, they used cover and concealment, and they used imagination. In Normandy our people always lined right up on one hedgerow and then down another hedgerow. You know, one
I

line.

And,

if

you observe many units

in

the American

Army

today, you

will find

that that

still

is

43

exactly
it's

what we do. The

linear mentality in the defense.


It's

a natural thing to do.

the

way

Now, hopefully, we're layman imagines a war a line. So,

getting better, but


I

learned that from

the Germans.
I

guess

was impressed with

their

use of just one, two or three mechanized vehicles


I

like

assault

guns or tanks. Only two or three times did see them use a lot of tanks in what we would call a tank attack. But, most of the time, when you ran into German positions, you would run into a mixture of infantry and some kind of tracked fighting vehicles. Sometimes they were only little vehicles with 20 millimeter cannons, often 20 millimeter antiaircraft guns. Whatever they could
find, a self-propelled

their defenses.

88mm, a self-propelled 76mm, or a self-propelled 57mm, they integrated into And, they moved them around a lot. They wouldn't just sit in one place. We'd hear
firing at us,

them moving; they'd be over here


firing at us.

and then, the next time, they would be over there

German 20mm

antitank

gun

German 75mm,

high velocity,

self-propelled antitank

gun

The fourth

thing that

was

absolutely convinced of
pistols.

was

suppression. The

Germans were

masters of suppression using machine ground, and then, they'd

They'd spray our

front, drive our soldiers to the

come in on us. And, the more they shot, the less our people shot, and dangerous it got, until finally, when all of our people had stopped shooting, we knew the more that the Germans were either going to overrun us, or capture some of our people, or kill our guess came out of people, by getting right on top of us and throwing hand grenades. So,
I I

Normandy having

learned those four things.


there anything
in in

INTERVIEWER: Was

particular that

you learned about our

soldiers, other than

what you've already mentioned,

terms of what you could or could not expect of them?

44

GEN DEPUY:
soldiers

Well,

certainly

came away with

a feeling that only a small percentage of the

all of the fighting.* If you just left them alone then some 10 percent of the were the ones who actually took the initiative, moved, fired their rifles, threw hand grenades, and so on. The other 90 percent would defend themselves if they had to, but would not do the other things unless an officer or a sergeant directly ordered them to do it, in which case they usually would do it. learned that you couldn't depend on them doing things simply because there was a plan to do it, or because of some generalized order to do it, and this included the junior officers. You had to say, "do this," "do that," "now fire there," "now do this," and "now move there." You would always end up with a good sergeant or a good officer and three or four men doing all of the work. Unfortunately, the rest of them contributed to the casualties. And, to this very day, I'd rather have a 40-man company than a 220-man company, if could pick the 40 men. could. So, what I'm saying is that I'd pick sergeants and officers and a few natural fighters if with came away absolutely impressed the fact that the average man, like nine out of ten, or eight out of ten, does not have an instinct for the battlefield, doesn't relish it, and will not act independently except under direct orders. If they are in a crew they are better. If they are in a tank or with a machine gun, they are better because there is teamwork involved. If an officer orders them to do something eyeball-to-eyeball, most men, even the ones who don't want to do it, have no initiative, and are scared to death, normally will do exactly what he tells them to do. Once,

soldiers did almost

during the Battle of the Bulge, the

we moved

into

an attack at night (early morning).

We got

behind

off from the edge of some woods across an open, snowy field Luxembourg. had "B" Company in the overwatch and "A" Company doing the attack. Just before we were ready to go, a machine gun opened up on us from the rear, back in the woods. You see, we had gone past the Germans. We had slipped through them at night. And, some of them had turned around, came back, and spotted us milling around in the woodline. So, they set up a machine gun and started firing at our backs. didn't want to stop the attack because had the artillery just about ready to go. So, grabbed the first two soldiers could find, didn't know who they were, and said, "You and you, want you to go back and knock out the machine gun right now, because we are going to attack that town. Now, get going." And, they did! They were scared to death, but they did it. They would never have done it if hadn't said, "We have to do it, you have got to do it now go do it!" This means that

Germans and prepared


little

to

jump

to seize the

village of Berle,

effectiveness varies directly with leadership actively applied.

INTERVIEWER:
men-one mind"

During this time did you start to develop the ideas that

later

became the "eleven

or "follow

me and do as do"
I

concept, or did that

come

later?

GEN DEPUY:
was to

"Eleven men-one mind" was the articulation of the overwatch concept. The idea

provide a conceptual framework for the operation of a squad. Of course the goal

was

to get

more soldiers involved in the fighting and to reduce the necessity of stopping to explain how the two fire teams were to provide "fire and movement." That came after the war, but the impetus came from the generally poor performance of wartime squads. Often a platoon leader would give

'See S.L.A. Marshall,

Men Against Fire,

36-43 and 50-63.

45

up on squads and run a whole platoon as one an act of desperation.

mob

or as a

bunch of

individuals.

Of course that was

two mutually supporting teams has taken hold then the question of how to control a fire team arises. The answer is that the team leader leads. He is in front and his team follows on each side in a "V" formation. That is where the "follow me and do as do" came from. By the way, Gideon said the same thing "Observe me and do likewise."*
idea of operating
I

Once the

INTERVIEWER:
came around

That's what you were telling us

in

Vietnam during September of

'66,

and led a platoon with all of the officers following you. that platoon through the brush and showed us the cloverleaf, and how to maintain control
to each battalion

when you You moved

through the use of specific instructions.

GEN DEPUY:

Yes,

how to move
right!

a platoon in the jungle without getting zapped. But,

it

required

very specific instructions,

INTERVIEWER: When you


known
organization that

broke out of Normandy there was an organization that became

as Task Force Weaver, which included the 357th.

Was

there anything about that

was

particularly

noteworthy?

know

it

made

quite an

advance

all

the

way to

the

Mayenne

River.**

GEN DEPUY:
consisted of

Yes, to the

Mayenne

River and on to Le

Mans. As

recall,
in

Task Force Weaver


had the 345th
Field

my regiment,

the 357th, plus a tank battalion, the 712th, and

addition, to the direct

support

artillery battalion,

the 343rd Field Artillery Battalion (105mms),


in

we

Artillery Battalion

(155mms)

general support. There were


(

two elements
II

the 3rd Battalion

plus the tanks on a southern route, and the regiment

on the northern route. Brigadier General

World War when we had close air support. We had Air Force officers with radios at the head of each column. At Mayenne some engineers did some very brave things and pulled the detonating cords off of the charges on the bridge. In the meantime, we found some fishing boats, some little rafts, and logs, and crossed the river. That was really about the second victory that the regiment had, and it made everyone feel good. There wasn't much to it, frankly, but it made them feel good. Then we moved on toward Le Mans. Our

Weaver was

in

command.

This

was

the only time

in

regiment plus the division tank battalion (Task Force Weaver), was the

left

element of

XV

Corps.

Germans. The regimental headquarters had one exciting night when the 1st Battalion under Ed Hamilton, which was leading, went way on ahead. The 3rd Battalion was on a parallel road, and we had the 2nd Battalion in the rear, and mean really in the rear, further in the rear than they should have been. The regimental headquarters,
There were no friendly units on our
left

just

consisting of about ten people along with Frank Norris

who commanded

the

155mm

battalion,

Bob Salisbury, his S-3, the regimental antitank platoon, and about three jeeps, set up in a little town known as Ste. Suzanne. We stopped there and were trying to communicate with the 3rd
f

DePuy, William

E.

"Eleven

Men-One Mind," Army, 8 (March


activities of

1958), 22-24, 54-60.

**For a discussion on the


497-498.

Task Force Weaver see Blumenson, Breakout and Pursuit, 434-437 and

46

which was down south moving towards Le Mans. The 1st Battalion was in a fight up ahead of us, and the 2nd Battalion was nowhere to be seen when a German corps headquarters, together with odds and ends, drove down from the north into the town. [See Maps 8A and 8B, page 48]
Battalion,

The road from the north was a route that the Germans were trying to use to get out of the Falaise Pocket. They didn't know that we had moved as far east as Ste. Suzanne. We positioned the antitank platoon on that road and it shot all night long. Before the night was over, infantry, tanks, and much more came down that road and surrounded little Ste. Suzanne. They put tanks up on top of a hill that looked right down into the town square. By morning we had consolidated our little band in one or two houses in Ste. Suzanne. To our chagrin and embarrassment, we had to call the 1st Battalion back and send back to get the 2nd Battalion moved up. That was one of the regimental experiences. Then, about 20 miles further, toward Le Mans, the 3rd Battalion was pushing a German column ahead of it and approached a point where two roads merged. The 1st Battalion was halfway past the fork when the Germans came up on them from the rear. The 2nd Battalion then came along, so we had a big melee there. This happened to every unit going across France. They all remember those engagements with relish because they were all easy victories and

made the troops feel competent and


gained a
little

brave. But, each time they had

one of those experiences they

more confidence,

lost their

awe

of the Germans, and

became

better soldiers. Next,

we went

to Le

Mans, turned north and went up to Alencon, then on to Argentan, and attacked

into the southern flank of the

Germans

trying to get out of the Falaise Pocket.*

INTERVIEWER: Were you mounted then?

GEN DEPUY:

Yes,

we were mounted on

trucks.

INTERVIEWER: How did you

normally communicate with the battaiions, by radio?

GEN DEPUY:

Radio and

visits.

INTERVIEWER:

Did the radios work pretty well with you

mounted and moving?

GEN
vehicle

DEPUY:

Frankly, the infantry radios weren't very good, but


artillery

we

could almost always

communicate through our

radios which

as are tank radios.

The

infantry

were vehicular radios drawing power from the radios were mostly battery powered.

INTERVIEWER: You moved on


victory,

the southern flank of the Falaise

one which resulted

in

the destruction of

Gap and were part of a major German mechanized equipment such as tanks
kills?

and self-propelled gear. I'm curious as to how you achieved your tank

GEN DEPUY:
artillery

Most

of the

kills in

the Falaise Pocket, including tanks, were caused by

air

and

because the Germans were trying to get out and there were very few roads. Columns

Tor an

overall

view and discussion of

this

aspect of the campaign see Blumenson, Breakout and Pursuit, 425-429.

47

THE FALAISE GAP


XXXXX XX ARMY BOUNDARY nmiiiin FRONT LINE
1

'4

MORTAIN COUNTEROFFENSIVE

Map8A The

Falaise

Gap
AR6ENTAN- FALAISE POCKET
12-16 Auguit

1944

Map8B

Argentan-Falaise Pocket, 12- 16 August 1944

48

would get caught on the road by artillery fire because, you see, for several days, we had been sitting on the high ground looking down on the German columns. We weren't permitted to go into the Pocket because of that boundary dispute between the British and the Americans. But, our observers were on the high ground shooting into a bowl. The final bottleneck in the Falaise Pocket was at a little town called Chambois. The 358th Infantry finally put a battalion right in there and absolutely stopped the escape of the German forces. Our tanks and tank destroyers knocked out some tanks at the head of the columns, but the real slaughter, and it was an incredible inferno, was done by the artillery. Oh, and by the fighters. guess it's wrong to say that it was all done by the artillery. P-47s and the British rocket firing Typhoons were also in there all of the time. In fact, they shot at us some too, but they were very
I

effective

Map 9, page 51] There was a main east-west road that was blocked
in

destroying columns. [See

at

Chambois. There were two or three

columns all headed to the east, right on the road where they tried to pass one another. Then, on each side of the road, in the fields, were clearly discernible additional columns, about ten on each side of the road, so there were about 20 to 25 parallel columns as far as the eye could see. By that mean miles of destroyed vehicles, horses, tanks, and trucks. It was just an incredible sight. And, indeed, if we fight again, and if the Seventh Army and V Corps can hold and prevent a breakthrough, and the Russians get jammed up coming in, and if the Air Force can get at them, there is no doubt in my mind that that's where the killing will occur. Killing comes from heavy
parallel
I

firepower.

INTERVIEWER: You mentioned


there

that you thought our artillery


call

was

pretty good.

It

appears that

was a

lot

more

artillery at

your beck and

than what

we

have today.

That's right, the artillery was good. It was technically very sound; more so than the Germans. It could mass more quickly and had better communications. think the command and control and the fire direction techniques of the American Army were superior to the German
I

GEN DEPUY:

Army.

think they are superior today, by the way.


It's

The Germans
it.

still

make an

artillery battalion

organic to a brigade.
a lot of artillery.
It

not a part of the Division

Artillery.

That's not a good system. Yes,

we had
it

was
for

very good and

we

could always get lots of

At the Saar and afterwards,


didn't use
it

was not unusual


artillery

me

as a battalion
it.

commander
I

to be supported by five or six battalions of

anytime

really

needed

If

had a problem
I

could get

it.

Now,

it

all

the time,

but

if

mass

it

really had an emergency and and could get all of it through


I

really

wanted

a lot of firepower,

was

there.

They could

my direct support battalion.


battalion

INTERVIEWER: What day did you become a

commander?

GEN DEPUY:
so
it

remember what the date was. must have been about 4 December 1944.
I

can't

It

was two days before we crossed

the Saar,

INTERVIEWER: Would you describe the circumstances command? Was there a wounded battalion commander?

surrounding your assumption of

49

Aerial

view of the massive destruction at Falaise Gap.

German men, animals and vehicles were caught and destroyed by American artillery within the Falaise Gap.

The

rain of destruction left

German

vehicles

in

an unrecognizable mass.

50

CLOSING THE ARGENTAN-FALAISE POCKET


17-19 Augutt 1944
Front line .evening
16

August

ooooooooo
tt

Positions reached (7 August


Positions reached IB August

Positions aeacheo

r9

August

XXX

TEMPORARY SOUNOARv

1st

Junction of Elms of Polish Arwd Oiv

90 tm
in

U.S. inf Civ ano CnAyeois at 1945, 19 Aug

SECONDARY ftOAOS useo by Germans


STAGE OF BATTLE

in

the last

/^Mfo,,i91a\i6

A jJM
Hv^sw
\I, /^\ >?.

<

.,

.5/ Lambert
I

r
7?
v

pu-HSHtme

j iiii

t ii

iii

^r""

vj^
hGvce

>

30/

IV-

r\.^

k.<

ntgaroulrX

^C$'
.

Sol

/
Nem&nt-ie-Pm

-4

EJ2'
.'

,/eJfer/etaxrft

y.

\\
(

'
213

y~i
/

Vb'
\ ?0o

-2

>),'

y
,

6 AUG

/zs.

V+e<n-P0ft^$

*%% Mortree
,.
:

-.-oC

/^

</>'

-I
'//

<#

-***.

Jr.

FIRSTjTHIRD-

> Y
<<

-m
/
1

MOyro
"

10

MC4

N t\t
flut
\

MOPT/GNE.tS
TO ALt^OH^

f*S

"ES.

it-

23 auc

).^*n

'

"

\\

Map 9

Closing the Argentan-Falaise Pocket

51

GEN DEPUY:

No. As

we came up

to the Moselle River north of Metz, Colonel Hamilton

was

wounded and was

replaced for a

little

while by a Lieutenant Colonel Strickler. Next, a lieutenant

colonel from the 101st Airborne Division took


of the Moselle at Koenigsmacker,

command and was

in

command

during the crossing

and the fighting between the Moselle and the Saar. Just as the

regiment
with a

came up

to the Saar, just south of Merzig and north of Dillingen, there

was some
huge cave

fighting to get to the


lot

bank of the
it.

river.

There were a couple of big

hills

there.

One had

commander found it difficult to lead his battalion during that fighting. remember that the regimental CP was in a little village about a mile and a half short of the river, behind one of these big hills. He simply walked in one night and told the regimental commander that he couldn't take it anymore. Then, as soon as he walked out, the colonel waved his finger at me and said, "Go to the 1st Battalion," And, to this day, don't know exactly what he wanted me to do whether he wanted me to go down and take command or just what he wanted me to do. But, in any event, went down and sent a message back that had taken
of refugees in
I

The

battalion

day and half or two days. So, had a day and a half to get ready to take the battalion across the river. And, it was a battalion that was not full of confidence because the former battalion commander was the sort who said, know it will be tough so we'll try it first with "A" "Well, we have orders to take that hill.
of the battalion.
to cross the river
in

command
I

They already had orders

Company.
in

If

they don't

make

it,

we'll try

"B" Company." Now, you know


[See

that no

"A" Company

the

Army would

ever take a

hill

that way.

Map

10,

page

53]

INTERVIEWER:

So, this occurred after Colonel Barth had been

wounded and

Colonel

"X" had

taken over. He was with the regiment from about the end of October through mid-February, then

he departed. What happened to him?

GEN DEPUY:

Well, he

was

relieved

and John Mason took over.


of your

INTERVIEWER:
Colonel Mason.

So, you had

some

command

under Colonel "X" and the

rest of

it

under

GEN DEPUY:

Yes.

The

story of the 90th Division

is

a story of leadership

both good and bad.

commanders. By the way, we had six division commanders during the same period. Of the regimental commanders, two, Bittman Barth and John Mason, were superb Barth an old regular and Mason a born leader. Sheehy was killed after three days. We have already said enough about the first man who led us into Normandy. Colonel "X" was a strange case. He seldom ventured outside the command post. On operational matters he was simply not involved. He left that entirely up to me and always talked to the battalion commanders before orders were issued. Colonel "X" spent
five regimental
I

During the whole time from June to the following May,

we had

considerable time standing before the

map board

coloring the forests green, the rivers blue, the

towns

black,

and the

fields

brown. The operations sergeant kept him supplied with crayons.


barely noticed his presence.

Eventually he

was

relieved.

The regiment

INTERVIEWER: When you


impression of the

arrived to take

command

of the 1st Battalion,

what was your

company commanders? Were they competent?

52

Map

10

90th Division's advance to the Saar River

53

The company commanders were fine, but they had been spoiled by a very weak battalion commander. One of them was a fellow named George Spaith who took all the way through the rest of the war. Another was a captain named Reckavik, who was killed. In any event, "C" Company was Reckavik's and "A" Company was Spaith's. The "B" Company commander's name was Horner. He later became my S-3. Well, the first thing told them was that they were great guys but that times were going to change and that they were going to do exactly what they were told to do, and that we were going to start functioning as a battalion. said, "You know, I've been aware of what has been going on in this battalion and you know as well as do, that that's not going to work. You know that everybody is going to get killed if we pussyfoot around like that. So, now we are going to go ahead and get to work." Well, we did! Now, it turned out that the Saar operation was a very tough operation one of the toughest of all. But, they all did what they were told to do, and as a battalion, we did what we were told to do. In fact, we were the only battalion in the regiment that did exactly what it was told had the left flank battalion in the division with nothing on my to do at the time of the crossing. left. You see, the 90th and the 95th were side by side when we went across. There was nothing on the left flank of the 90th. We were going to make a corps bridgehead, XX Corps think it was Sam Walker's daddy commanded it and then, we were going to break out and go to Mainz. They were going to shoot an armored division through us. The Siegfried Line ran along the river
I

GEN DEPUY: knew them

all.

And, halfway across the flood plain was a up on an embankment; under that embankment there were more pillboxes. Then the flood plain extended further to the woodline and hills beyond. guess from the river to the hills it was a half mile, a quarter of a mile to the railway embankment, and a quarter of a mile to the road
with
of the pillboxes right at the water's edge.
railroad track
I

some

wooded hills. At the road there was another line of pillboxes and back up in the were still more pillboxes and concrete shelters. * [See Map 1 1 woods page 55] So, there were three lines of pillboxes, plus some scattered ones up in the woods. Up on top of the hill, on the left flank, there was a highway intersection, not really a major one but an important one for that area. Well, anyway, my job was to cross the river, get on that hill and block that major road junction on the left flank of the division's bridgehead. My concept of crossing that river is one that reflects my view to this day on how to do things. felt that if we stopped to fight at the river, or at the railroad track, or at the road, then we would never get to where we were going. So, felt that the only way we could ever get through that maze of pillboxes and up on top of that hill was to totally decentralize things down to individual squads. So, in the day and a half that had, personally talked to every company commander and then had the company commanders bring in every platoon leader and squad leader and gave them all the same orders "Get in the boats and cross the river. If you are shot at from the pillbox, go to one side or the other of it. Don't stop and don't go back. Go to the right or go to the left, but go inland and cross the railroad track. Don't stop to fight anybody. When you get to the road, turn right and move south until you come to the end of the woodline. When you get to the
at the foot of the

there

end of the woodline wait until at least a platoon is there and then go up the hill to the road junction and wait. Get yourself set up for defense and wait until we all get there. Then we'll organize. If you

*For an overview of the operation and photographic details concerning the German defenses, see United States Army in World War II: The Lorraine Campaign (Washington: USGPO, 1950, 558-592.

Hugh M.

Cole,

54

DILLINGEN-PACHTEN BRIDGEHEAD
6-19 December
*

1944

Crossing area Advance, 6 December minium Forward positions, evening 19 Dec German defenses. from captured map: """"" Wire m Pillbox
"

iooo

Map

1 1

The 357th

Infantry Regiment's attack across the Saar

55

are the only


that road.
If

one
all

who

gets there, the mission

is

to block that road.

If

we

all

get there, we'll

all

block

only one

company gets there,


I

fine. But,

block that road junction!"

two men out of 500. The crossing really was hairy because initially made a horrible mistake. In the little town of Rehlingen, which was right on the near riverbank, infiltrated in a platoon of quad 50s mounted on the back of half-tracks. wanted them there just in case we got stopped in the middle of the river by pillbox fire and weren't able to get across. Well, my mistake was that gave the antiaircraft lieutenant in command of that
Well,

we

got there.

think

we

might have

lost

OBSERVATION TYPE
PlLLrBOX

MEANWU.THKWCSS>
APPftOX. 6'6"

RETRACTABLE FlRIJCOFl

12"

STEEL TURRET
'

eTH

FILL

( PORTS-S"STt|L
SLI0IN6

-2MOVASLE MOUNT MS. (FIRE FROM ANY FORT)


OSSERVTION t
FISHTINS

COVERS

AMMO STORAOt

Section 'AA*

pillboxes
scAir
i

The massive steel and concrete were difficult to overcome.

-o

WO'V

MEMO

SIGFRIf

DRAWING

UNI FORTIFICATIONS
920 mr,R BN

Diagram of a

typical

German

observation type pillbox.

platoon,

responsibility for deciding

when

to

open
I

fire.

actually thought

had given that


a tank destroyer
In

responsibility to the

platoon

in

there,

commander of the tanks; also had and some .50 caliber machine guns from
I

a tank platoon

and

the battalion trains.

other words,

had that town loaded with firepower, but what didn't have, was clear responsibility as to whom would decide when to use it. You see my orders were, "Don't open fire unless we're getting heavy fire from the pillboxes on the river." Well, it turned out that heavy fire to me and heavy fire to that lieutenant from the antiaircraft platoon, who never had been on the front-line in his life, was quite
different.

56

What happened

is

had put them there

we had the boats lined up about 100 yards from the river. The engineers and we had engineer tape leading from the assembly areas to the boats. After
that
river,

they picked up a boat, each squad was to go straight to the


I

and go and do all of those good things that talked about. Well, just about the time the first two companies got to the boats and were picking them up, about two machine pistols fired from the other side of the river and the whole goddamned town of Rehlingen lit up. All the .50 calibers, all the tanks and all the tank destroyers were firing tracers. It lit up the whole Saar River Valley and it woke up every defender
get
in,

was a very inauspicious initiation as a battalion commander. Once we got them shut down and the enemy fire died down a little bit, my S-3, a guy named McAlister, and walked along and went to every boat and every squad. A few of them we had to put into the boats
for

25 miles. So,

it

really

I,

at pistol point.

suppose that

is

not an approved leadership technique.

INTERVIEWER: What time of the day was this?

GEN DEPUY: Two


know,
typical

o'clock

in

the morning.

It

was dark and

raining; just awful

weather.

You

as ugly as you can imagine. But, and done, they all got there. Everybody got there. They had gone around, over, and between pillboxes. went to the rendezvous place and there were, oh, maybe 50 or 60 guys milling around. found out who they were and said, "Let's go." Now, by the time got up to the road junction, half of the battalion already was there, and within another hour the whole bloody works was there. had every man carry a mine, an antitank mine. We had about 300 antitank mines, and they saved us. We made a big circle around the road junction, and sort of tried to fit the terrain as best we could in the dark, especially on the two roads that came from the enemy's direction. We put minefields across the roads from tree line to tree line and then, even amongst the trees. We also

German November and December weather. Just


I

when

all

was

said

left

to

some mines exposed as a deterrent. There were five come down those roads with armored vehicles of all
(The

or ten occasions
different kinds,

Germans tried but they never went past


the

when

the minefield.

We were surrounded.
our right
until later

map on page

55

is

misleading.)
in

because they became involved

The 2nd Battalion didn't come up on fight amongst the pillboxes. Soon, the

troopers began complaining that they couldn't feel their toes anymore.

We
and

weather

The foxholes were filled with water. It sharp engagements every day when the Germans tried
injuries.
in their

rained incessantly

we

had a lot of cold had four or five


rotate
all

to pry us off that road junction. This kept

the soldiers

water-filled holes.

them through

a couple of

We'd take the soldiers out occasionally, and try to German storage bunkers that were inside our perimeter. We put

the

wounded
finally

in

the biggest bunker.

We
this

had our doc with us,


little

Dr.

DeLeo.

In

those days you always

took your doc with you. He ran

aid station right in the middle of the perimeter

got loaded with wounded, people with immersion foot, and other people

who

and it were sick.

We had several
The

pneumonia cases.

Germans managed to get a few troops inside our perimeter but we were able to take care of that. Once, two German machine gunners slipped through and set up about 10 yards from the battalion command post, which was a fourman bunker. No armored vehicles penetrated. We were able to strip away their infantry and they
fighting there
interesting. Several times the

was

stopped

at the mines.

We

used a

lot

of artillery.

We

could get three or four battalions of

artillery

57

through our direct support battalion. The Air Corps' XIX Tactical Air Command (TAC), dropped us some ammo and medical supplies in wing tanks. One pilot couldn't get his tank to drop so when he came in for the third time he brushed it off on a tall pine tree. He flew a P-47 out of Etain,

and we sent him a silver star. Finally, we were given orders to come back across the river. We didn't know it but the Battle of the Bulge had started. Our attack never went further east than that. could have gone forward, but the rest of the attack got all tangled up in the pillboxes behind us and then the river flooded; the Germans had the high ground to the north, and the engineers could never keep a bridge in. Anyway, finally got orders to pull back. got those orders about five o'clock in the afternoon
I
I I

stating that
ferries,

was

to pull back that night

was

to pull back to the

cross the Saar, and then be refitted and reconstituted. Well, that

town of Dillingen, get on the was quite a challenge.


I
I

whole bloody pillbox full of wounded people and guys who couldn't walk, and had another bunker with, oh, maybe 10 or 15 dead in it. Anyway, decided that would use the same technique to get out of there that had used to get
had
a
I I

in.

We started pulling

out at midnight;

it

was

as black as the inside of a goat.

It

was

raining

which

was good. So, the orders were that each squad was to come to the aid station and pick up one wounded or sick man and take him with them. Their orders were, "Go downhill toward the river.

When

you get to the road, then turn


If

left,

but don't cross

it,

and stay
fight.

in

the ditches. Don't fight


to the road, turn
left

anybody.

they shoot at you, go around them. Don't stop and


until

Go

and

keep going. No matter what happens, keep going

amongst them and


figure out

stop.

how

to get

Where the road goes into down to the ferry." And, by

you see a lot of houses, then go right in the town, stop. We'll all get together there and
golly,

we

did

it.

We

got every

wounded man

and every man with trench foot out. Never lost a single soul and didn't have a single casualty. There was shooting all over the place and it was as scarey as the devil, but it was so dark that nobody could see enough to engage. It was 2000 meters back to where the buildings were. And, all these fellows, this gaggle of soldiers, went down in the dark and did exactly what they were told to do. And, they all got back again. It was a central idea and totally decentralized execution. So, felt learned another principle which is be very specific as to what you want them to do and if you are, they'll do it. Keep it simple!
I

INTERVIEWER:

So, each squad

was
I

briefed

in

the battalion headquarters?

GEN DEPUY:
The town
take
it

No, at the company.

might just give you one other example of

this kind of thing.

of Maizieres-les-Metz, six miles north of Metz,


it

was

a place

where we fought

a lot.*

General Patton got so fed up with reading about

in

the Stars
it

and Stripes

that he ordered us to

anymore. So, we put two battalions in there, the 3rd Battalion, commanded by Colonel Mason, assigned a house to each squad he actually assigned a squad to each house. He gave them a full day to figure out how they were

once and

for

all.

He just

didn't

want

to read about

going to get to their assigned house and what they were going to do once they got there. Well, some of them had it all figured out "Well, Mullen is going to throw a hand grenade in that

window, then Brownlee is going to jump in that window." That was okay; that was good. But, some of the squads hadn't figured out who was going to do what. The companies made them
Tor the 90th
Division Headquarters' perspective, see Cole,

The Lorraine Campaign, 276-280.

58

plan

it all

out and build a


shoots,

little

sand table or mockup and


throws?" Well,

tell

them,

"Who

goes

first,

who

runs

where,

who
oh,

and who

this attack

jumped

off at three o'clock in the

morning.

In five
I

to ten minutes the battle

was

over. In five minutes the

We had,
[See

don't know, 200 prisoners

a small battalion.

We

lost

whole thing was finished. maybe, two or three men.

Map

12 below and

Maps

13 and 14, page 60]

INTERVIEWER: The

unit history states that that attack

was made by the 2nd

Battalion, 357th.

XX CORPS
SITUATION, NOON 6

SEPTEMBER I944

Map

12

The 357th

Infantry

Regiment poised

for

its

advance on Maizieres-les-Metz

59

Map

13

90th Division's advance to the Moselle River


THIRD ARMY FRONT
Evening, 25 September I944

Map

14

Third Army's Front

on the evening of 25 September 1944

60

GEN DEPUY: The


the time.
a mortar

was made by the 2nd and 3rd Battalions. was the regimental S-3 at That's when Colonel Barth was wounded. In fact, just before the attack Barth was hit by
attack
I

of the

Herman Goering Reichwerk. [See Photo Map


I

fragment while standing under a concrete ramp which ran up to the Bessemer converter 15, page 62]
read the history,

INTERVIEWER: When
enlisted

made

a note

which

states: "2-357 fight for

town

of

Maizieres-les-Metz included

man knew

Then

I've

new tactics, limited objectives, calculated, each officer and each and his objectives, four groups of ten each went after the City Hall." got, "above smacks of General DePuy on control and specific guidance."
his job

GEN DEPUY: We
the city
hall

had the two battalions.


district,

We had

the 2nd that attacked from the north against

and business
all

the west, into


for

and the 3rd which attacked from Herman Goering Reichwerk on the southern two-thirds of the town. And, it was marvelous. We had fought in there
sorts of casualties trying to get that

weeks and had


it

damn

city hall, or

school building, or

John Mason, the 3rd Battalion commander, later the regimental commander, was the genius who figured it all out. He was going to grab that thing the way it ought to be grabbed, and it was a howling success. But, it was the instructions at the squad level that made the difference. It was totally decentralized in execution and totally centralized in planning. Now, there has got to be a lesson in that somewhere, right?
whatever
was. And,
just fiddled

we

and fiddled and took

casualties.

By the evening of 30 October 1944, the 357th Infantry Regiment controlled what was left of Maizieres-les-Metz.

61

m
i

111
iiV
I
D
C71

Bftft

'.3'

CD

El

11

Wit

3"

CD

1
m

5?.

n'
cd'

CD U)
cd"

en

'.
.,.:,

VS..?!

62

INTERVIEWER:
significant

Right.

Now, with regard

to

combat

service support,

is

there anything exciting or

about what occurred to keep you going?


No,
I

GEN DEPUY:
see

don't think so.


sure that
all

serious problems.

am

The war was so linear in nature the maintenance and supply people did

that
a

we

didn't have

any

good job but we

didn't

much

of

it.

We had
In

we

needed.
really ran

INTERVIEWER:
90th located?

September, when the Third Army

out of supplies, where

was

the

GEN DEPUY:

Well,

when

the Third

Army

really ran out,

we were at
come
in

Metz.

INTERVIEWER: How
no more gas?

did that

happen? Did the S-4

just

one day and say that there was

happened was that the 7th Armored Division had gotten out in front and actually had gotten into Metz just at the time when we ran out of gas. They couldn't get enough strength into Metz to hold it. So, 7th Division came back out, and we, the 90th and the 5th, slid up to the river. There wasn't enough POL for the tanks to go any further. There hardly was enough to move the artillery pieces. So, the Third Army simply had to stop for awhile and let things catch up. The supplies were coming all the way from Normandy. Ammunition and gasoline were being flown into Etain, between Verdun and Metz, by C-47 troop-carrier aircraft. So, we bellied up to the Moselle and stopped. Now, there were still infantry actions on the front, but the Army as a whole, was no longer attempting a big offensive. When it did try, it had two big offensives, one that Abe Abrams and the 4th Armored Division were in down south, east of Nancy, and the one where we went across the Moselle at Koenigsmacker, and then went on to the Saar.* We went north and the 5th went south, and we met behind Metz. The 95th came in and took over at Metz proper. That was in November, but we first came up to the Moselle in early September. [See Maps 16 and 17, pages 64 and 65]
Well,

GEN DEPUY:

what

really

Germans seemed to be able to stymie the advance of the division in this sector from time to time. From reading the division's history, it looks like it was the sort of thing that you were talking about earlier, where they almost seemed to be fighting by using what you later called the active defense. They had all these little
the Third
rolled

INTERVIEWER: As

Army

across France, the

positions

of thing.

and they'd move from position to position launching brief counterattacks, and that kind Is that a correct description of what the Germans were doing?
Well, across France

GEN DEPUY:
So,
*At

we just

ran into

little

groups that were pretty much incoherent

insofar as a general defense

we would

run into a

was concerned. But, being good German soldiers, they fought well. company here, a Kampfgruppe there, a couple tanks here, and an assault

Lieutenant Colonel Creighton William Abrams, Jr., commanded the 37th Tank Battalion, 4th Armored General Abrams, a celebrated World War II Armor officer, later served as the Commander, Military Assistance Command, Vietnam (1968-72), and as Chief of Staff of the Army (1972-74).
this time,

Division.

63

Map

16

90th Division crosses the Moselle River

64

Map

17

The

Battle of

Metz

65

gun
little

or

two

there. But,

whatever

it it

was

that they used,


it.

it

meant

that

we would

have a

little

fight.

Normally

we

could either overrun

or outflank

It

just took a

little bit

of time, but there

was very

north and got up to Argentan. There was a serious fight there between Alencon and Argentan. The 2nd French Armored Division was involved in that. And then, we had another big fight in the town of Le Bourg-St. Leonard
serious fighting.
with,
it was the 2nd Panzer Division that was coming out. But, there were some fair, small up there on the southern flank of the pocket, mostly with German units that were trying to move to the west. But, there weren't any large battles. You know, there weren't any real linear, coherent battles across France. There was always an open flank so you could always just move around whatever you ran into.
I

We didn't have a serious fight until we turned

think

fights right

INTERVIEWER: You mentioned

that the

Germans were
like

pretty

good

at using

all

of their vehicles

but that they really didn't employ big tank assaults

we

might

learned during this period that you could apply today

in

you fighting armor, things that would be


visualize.

Was there anything

meaningful?

GEN DEPUY:
assault

Well,

think the

first

thing that impressed everybody at the time

was how

handful of Germans could hold up a regiment by sighting their

weapons

properly.

If

they had two

guns and 25 men, they put one assault gun on one side of the road, perhaps on the reverse
infantry

slope firing through a saddle, and put another one behind a stone house, firing across the road.

They protected them with some

and had a couple of guys with Panzerfausts up on the road itself, or just off the road in pits or behind houses. Now, here comes the point of an American unit roaring down the road, a couple of jeeps or maybe a tank, and bang, you lost a tank or two. The company commander then decides to maneuver a platoon around and boom, he loses another tank. So, the commander decides to wait for the battalion commander to come up. And, the battalion commander, if he is very imaginative, might say, "All right, while I'm trying to solve this thing, "C" Company go wide around to the right and come up behind this town." Those were the tactics which kept the thing moving. But, sometimes a unit would stay there and fight all day

men and two assault guns. And, that happened all too often. Commanders would too often attack the enemy head-on, whereas if they could just screen that position, just block it with something and find another way around, then they could keep going. Eventually, that is what almost always happened. They found their way around. Some units would find their way around in a matter of minutes and hours; other units couldn't find their way
against 25

whole day fiddling with one of these little things. Now, what one learned from fighting a lot of these things, is an understanding of tactics. The big lesson is not to take him head-on. Anything is better than that. And, you get an understanding of sighting weapons. The Germans were just superior at that. And, to this day, they are very good at it.
around except
after having lost a

INTERVIEWER: About the middle of October, General Van Fleet came in and command of the division from General McLain. assume that there was no change in
I

took over
the quality

of leadership

in

the division, but I'm sure that there

was a

personality change.

66

The German

88mm tank destroyer


was

Panzerfaust 60
different

known

as the Rhinoceros,

one of four models of a highly


German
recoilless

able to engage tanks at long ranges.

effective

antitank grenade launcher.

GEN DEPUY:

Yes. By that time the division

was

quite confident, and General

Van

Fleet

was

very seasoned soldier.

We

hated to see McLain go but Van Fleet

was recognized

as a fine fellow,

and he was. Van

Fleet got

around and talked to people; he wasn't a


in.

command

post general.

He

was

not as articulate as McLain.

wasn't a ripple

when he came

He was a massive man; and, he knew what he was doing. There He didn't change anything. He expected success and he got it!*

*Major General Raymond Stallings McLain, later promoted to lieutenant general, was originally an Oklahoma National Guard officer. He first saw action in World War as a machine gun officer in the Champagne and MeuseArgonne offensives. General McLain left the 90th Division and assumed command of XIX corps. Following World War II, General McLain, National Guard, was commissioned as a brigadier general, Regular Army, by Presidental appointment, the first National Guard officer to be so honored. General James Alvard Van Fleet later served as Commander, III Corps (1945), and as Commander, Eighth Army, Korea (1951-53). Since his retirement in 1953, General Van Fleet occasionally has been recalled to active duty to serve as a special advisor to the President or to the Department of Defense.
I

67

CHAPTER

III

Across the Moselle And Into Germany

INTERVIEWER:
back
in

So, the division crossed the Moselle and the Saar Rivers, and then had to
in

pull

order to participate

the Battle of the Bulge?

and then went up and crossed the Moselle north of Thionville, or Diedenhofen as the Germans called it. Then we crossed the Saar and conducted that operation which talked about earlier. Next, because of the Battle of the Bulge, we pulled back just before Christmas. It took several days to pull ourselves together, get some replacements and conduct some training, and then we took off and headed north, toward the Bulge. *[See Maps 18 and 19, page 69 and 70]
That's right.
I

GEN DEPUY:

We went to Metz,

INTERVIEWER:

Did you actually go into Bastogne?

go into Bastogne, we went just between Bastogne and Wiltz, in order to cut the highway between Bastogne and St. Vith, up near the little town of Trois Vierges, or the Three Virgins. As a matter of fact, General Patton gave General Van Fleet a very unusual option. He said, "Here is the southern edge of the Bulge. The 4th Armored has just gotten into Bastogne and here are the divisions on-line." The 26th was in one place, the 4th was way over there, and the 80th was somewhere along there. He said, "You pick the area that you want to attack in. There was a ridge that ran north just to the west of Wiltz, which incidentally had been the location of the 28th Division headquarters in the early fighting. And so, we came up from the south, and attacked with two regiments abreast, the 359th on the right and the 357th on the left, through the 26th Division. Our objective was to destroy German forces in the salient which protruded south and east between Bastogne and Wiltz. Our attack began about four o'clock in the morning. It was mid-winter in that part of Europe, so the days were very short. Anyway, attacked in the dark and got through. had a theory which, think, worked every time. The Germans always defended on the tops of the hills and in the valleys. If you went to the top of the hill, you would find a German position; if you went to the bottom, you would find a German position. But, there was never a defensive position on the hillsides. Every time we made an attack in that area of high forested hills, the whole battalion would go single file. We'd go around the side of the hill and right through the German positions and get behind them. We never had to fire a shot. The Germans would be down on the bottom, or up on the top, so they couldn't see us. There was snow and it was quiet. We'd go right through. We did that three times in that particular fight. So, we didn't have to fight to penetrate. It was something we learned in Normandy don't fight them head-on; find out where they are and go someplace else. Of course, it was even easier at night.
No,

GEN DEPUY:

we

didn't

*For a discussion on the Battle of the Bulge, see


Battle of the Bulge (Washington:

Hugh M.

Cole, United States

Army in World War II: The Ardennes:


for Trumpets:

and Charles B. MacDonald, A Time of the Battle of the Bulge (New York: William Morrow and Company, Inc., 1985).

USGPO,

1965),

The Untold Story

68

THIRD ARMY
LAST PHASE OF LORRAINE OFFENSIVE
3-19 December 1944

___

___
"i/ / /,/ /

Front line, evening 2 December Front line, evening 19 December Maginot line

SXQOVX
O
6

WEST WALL

Map

18

90th Division prepares to crack the

"West Wall"

69

WESTERN
'

FRONT

20 December 1944
Allied front line, 1200, 20 Dec Axis of German counteroffensive

:west Wall German front

line, 5

September
o

<o

MILES

Map

19

The German Counteroffensive

in

the Ardennes

70

INTERVIEWER: That
either

reminds

me

of something else.

It

may

or

may

not be directly related but

it

on the forward slope. They obviously were not. As you said, they were on the top or down at the base, and yet, when entered the Army, we were being taught to defend on what was called the military crest of the hill, which is, in fact, the forward slope. Maybe that was a result of the Korean War.
pertains to being located
I

GEN DEPUY:

That was the Korean syndrome.


think
affects us today.

INTERVIEWER: And,

it still

GEN DEPUY: And


INTERVIEWER:

badly, particularly

if

you are putting infantry there; they can only get


like

killed.

Right.

think you

once mentioned that an incident

that

happened

in

Europe.

GEN DEPUY:
series of rivers.

Yes. After the Bulge had collapsed and

we

started back to the east,

we

crossed a
very

high open ridge.

When we got up between the Prum and the Kyll Rivers, we encountered a One of my company commanders put his "C" Company out in the snow
in

bare forward slope. They dug

On

the other side of the river

and everyplace they dug they made dark doughnuts in there was another ridge. On top of that ridge were some German

on a the snow.

and they waited until the company commander had all of his troopers scattered foxholes on the forward slope, and then, they just started firing with their two assault guns. It was murder. Finally, after they killed and wounded maybe 20 men in that company, the rest of them just got up and bolted out of there and went over to the reverse slope, which is where they belonged in the first place. So, being on a forward slope when the enemy has direct fire weapons, high velocity direct fire weapons, is suicide. And, every time went to Germany, tried to convince Blanchard and the 1st Armored Division, the 3rd Armored Division, and the 3rd Division, at Hohenfels, of that. But, time after time, I'd find them all lined up in exposed, uncamouflaged, half-finished positions right within the sights of a Russian T-62 tank. It's suicide unless they have frontal cover and are camouflaged. A trench is better. You see, a trench is a superior solution to that. And, a lot of people, the North Koreans, the South Koreans, the North Vietnamese, the Russians, and some Germans, use trenches. The Arabs, the Egyptians, the Syrians and the Israelis, sometimes use trenches. Why? Because you don't know where they are when they're in the trenches. When you are trying to shoot at people in a trench line, you have to ask yourself, "What part of a trench line do shoot at?" You can waste a lot of ammunition trying to suppress a trench. But, trying to suppress clearly visible American foxholes or bunkers with high velocity weapons is a Cakewalk. It's suicide to go into battle like that. But, our Army as a
assault guns,

around

in

their

whole, doesn't

know that.
I'm afraid that

INTERVIEWER:
in

the Korean War. Apparently

we still that's how

are doing
it

what people like myself were taught right after was done on the hills of Korea. That's how people dug

and fought.

71

GEN DEPUY:
any large
direct

They were mostly dug in against mass Chinese infantry assaults. There weren't fire weapons, or only a very few. They weren't using tanks to snipe. So, you could

say that that approach

was

partially justified, but,

and have been totally invisible from the from the front, and totally camouflaged.
right.

front.
If

even then, they should have had frontal cover They should have been firing at angles, covered
all

they had done

of that, then

it

would have been

all

INTERVIEWER:

But,

in fact,

they were
little

in

bunkers, which

imagine were very obvious.

GEN DEPUY:
positions
it
I

Yes. They were

forts like the Special Forces forts in

Vietnam. Or,

like

the

didn't like in Europe. People always


is

were

trying to build a fort. But, they

would only get

half

done, and a half finished fort

an easy target for a tank gun. So, that's not very good.

compare for us the Saar River crossing with your first crossing Moselle conducted in mid-November shortly after General Van Fleet assumed command division. believe you were confronted not only by the enemy, but also by the elements.*
Please
I

INTERVIEWER:

of the

of the

GEN DEPUY:

Corps wisely decided to forgo a direct assault into the fortifications of Metz and instead envelop from both north and south. The 5th Division crossed south and the 90th

Yes. The

XX

north of Metz with the object of meeting about 10 miles or


Division held the sector

more east

of

Metz while the 95th

around the

fortifications themselves.

The 90th Division crossed north of Thionville near Cattenom, with the 358th Regiment on the right and the 359th on the left. The 357th then came across the center at the village of Koenigsmacker, which was located just where the Maginot line crossed the Moselle from the
northwest to southeast. Thus, the 90th had a single division bridgehead.
Unfortunately, the river

was

at flood stage.

Worse

yet, the flooding


river
it

grew progressively worse as

time went on. At the time of the assault crossing, the

hour but was generally within


torrent.

its

banks.

Two days later

was flowing at seven to ten miles an was over one half mile wide and a raging

and bring over the armor. But the engineers were unable to keep a bridge in place and the approaches were so far under water that 2Vz ton trucks flooded out. Jeeps were submerged. To make the whole thing even more interesting General Hermann Balck, the German Army recall, Group commander, seeing our difficulties, sent a heavy tank battalion, the 555th
plan, as usual,

The

was

to put

in

a bridge

consisting of King Tiger tanks, against the bridgehead through the 359th Infantry.

As

part of a

Kampfgruppe, the Germans penetrated to the river in the center of the sector and shot up the engineer ferries and partial bridge segments. Through substantial heroics the 359th finally ejected the Kampfgruppe. The 358th finally captured Fort Koenigsmacker which loomed over the bridgehead. A second armored thrust against the bridgehead was also defeated at Distroff by a spirited counterattack by

*For a thorough discussion of this

river

crossing see Cole, Lorraine Campaign, 380-416.

72

the 358th Infantry. The 357th fought

its

way down

the ridge

in

the center which

was

heavily

combed
All

with the Maginot forts and tunnels and infested with Germans.
in this

three regiments and the engineers were hard pressed

operation. But each crisis

was

met.

Somebody

or

some group

rose to the occasion.

The

division

had matured.

It

was no

longer

awed by the Germans.


General Patton called this operation one of the epic
the 90th
river

crossings of

all

time. Ever afterwards

was one of his favorite divisions. Just three months earlier the 90th was a candidate for inactivation and disgrace. Under the leadership of McLain and Van Fleet it had found its company and battalion commanders from its own ranks. It had learned how to fight through on-the-job training. That process was long and bloody, but in the last analysis, it was a tribute to the American spirit. It was not a triumph of the
"system".
In

any event, the 90th meet the 5th behind Metz and together,

we proceeded

east to the Saar

and another adventure.

*e^e
Company
in

L,

357th Infantry Regiment,

shown

assault boats crossing the Moselle River.

73

.':'.'...

:...

./

us

The flooded Moselle

River presented many difficulties operations. for the 90th Division during its crossing

74

INTERVIEWER: Now,
do that?

the

Germans

didn't

have very many Tigers, but guess what they did have
I

they used well. Could an infantryman knock out a Tiger, or did

it

take a tank or a tank destroyer to

GEN DEPUY: The 2.36-inch Bazooka could defeat a King Tiger only by a shot into the engine compartment from the rear, which was a difficult thing to do. The 75mm tank gun and 3-inch gun on the tank destroyers could not penetrate the turret or the front of the King Tiger. At short ranges
they could penetrate the side armor.

^Wpp^

03t
a
Jills

3
*3a

The 2.36-inch Antitank Rocket Launcher

or

"Bazooka"

INTERVIEWER: Another problem that you faced inadequate clothing. Could you comment on that?

during this particular time of the year

was

GEN DEPUY:
to the Bulge.
I

Well, the main thing that


in

we

really

missed were the shoe packs.


Division,

received several

hundred replacements

my

battalion just after the Saar River operation, but before


all

we went up

think they

were

from the 65th Infantry


all

which was located somewhere

down

in

the Vosges Mountains. They were

equipped with shoe packs. But, none of our people

were, and

we had been

in

that water over across the Saar.


it

we

called trench foot; later, they called

immersion foot.

We had disastrous losses due to what We got some of those men back, but
lives. By the camp, think there killed, or had immersion had good raincoats. In fact, had

not many.

lot

of

them

lost

toes and others probably had trouble for the rest of their
rest

time

brought our "B"

were only about ten


foot. That's
I

Company back across the Saar and put it into a men left in it. All of the rest were either wounded or

why got hundreds of replacements in one day. We one of those raincoats until very recently a marvelous, rubberized coat that was kind of a greybrown. We wore those over a lot of clothes, over a lot of field jackets, and so on. During November and December that was the typical garb of fighting infantrymen.
I

75

INTERVIEWER: You mentioned earlier about moving the battalion along that hillside. How did you normally move a battalion? Would you normally be leading it like you did on that occasion?
column of companies, a column of platoons, and a column of squads, in a long line, and told them what to do in case we got all scrambled up. The rendezvous was always the objective. The rendezvous shouldn't be back where you started. That way, if something goes all flooey, then everybody proceeds to the objective independently; but, if it doesn't all go flooey, then the best way to go is to move a battalion single file. The company commander of the first company and the platoon leader of the lead platoon would be with me, plus the scouts.
In

GEN DEPUY:

that particular case

simply put them

in

INTERVIEWER:

Did you

move

primarily at night?

GEN DEPUY:
lost together.

Yes, and that's one of the reasons.

You

see, that

way,

if

we

got

lost,

we were

all

INTERVIEWER: And, you

didn't

have people stumbling around trying to find each other.

GEN DEPUY:
On one

Right.

We didn't have any,

"Where's

'A'

Company,"

or

"Where's

'B'

Company?"
line

occasion, while going through the Siegfried Line at the end of the Bulge, the
I

broke.

got up on the objective with only one and a half companies.

was standing

there watching the

guys come by
I

in

the middle of the night;


All of a

it

was
it.

kind of a bright night with a lot of

snow around, so
just the

could see pretty well.


platoon of

sudden, there wasn't anybody else going by. There was

first

at

"B" Company, and that was the very point where we had started. So,

The

rest of the battalion

was back about two

miles

left

the S-3 up there on the objective, and went back

and my little man, "Friday," and found them. They had turned back and had started. A lieutenant had broken the line, turned around, and went back. Then, he got scared and disappeared into the aid stations; we never caught that son-of-abitch. So, grabbed part of that bunch and started for the objective again; but, by this time, it was getting light. Anyway, we started out and it got very light and we came under fire. realized then that we were never going to make it to the objective in the daylight. At night we had just gone right across the open fields. So, there was, had a company and a half on the objective, and myself and a company and a half back at the starting point. Well, the next night we all got back
with
radio operator

my

were

right

back where

we

together.
Still,

the column

is

a
all

good

night control measure.

never have agreed with the doctrine for night


line
I

and attacking. feel you have to do one of two things in a night attack. You either infiltrate to the objective, and for that you have to have control, and single file provides the best control that you can get. Everybody holds on to the guy in front. And, you go in the darkest, worst part of the place, and get there by sneaking. Or, you do what we did in the middle of the night at Maizieres-les-Metz, where every squad knew what the objective was. So, you have the two extremes. One is when you don't want to fight at all, you are just trying to gain a piece of high ground. Then the enemy has a problem because you
attacks that calls for
of those release points

and getting on

76

Typical view of the Dragon's Teeth positioned along the Siegfried Line.

you have to fight, then you have to have centralized planning and decentralized execution. And, every squad leader must look in daylight at what he is going to traverse and seize at night. That means that you are never going to go more than a couple of
have gotten behind him. Or,
if

hundred yards, maybe 1,000 yards at most. So, again, a set piece night attack should be of short range; if you try to do it the way the manual used to prescribe, it's hopeless.

INTERVIEWER:

But, there

still

are people

who remember that

kind of stuff.

GEN DEPUY:
what
I

know, but
at least,
I

think
it

it's all

out of the manual, now.

think the manual

now

says

just said

hope

does.*
of the replacements that

INTERVIEWER: You mentioned


north to participate
orientation
in

all

you received

just before

you moved

the Battle of the Bulge.

Was there

time to give them any kind of training or

once you received them?

*To analyze how conducting night operations has changed over time, compare Field Service Regulations 100-5, Operations (Washington: USGPO, 1944), 241-246, with Field Manual 100-5, Operations (Washington: USGPO, 1982), 9-15 - 9-16. See Field Manual 7-20, Infantry Battalion (Washington: USGPO, 1944), 135-150, and Field Manual 7-20, The Infantry Battalion (Infantry, Airborne, and Air Assault), (Washington: USGPO, 1984), 4-42 - 4-48. See also, Field Manual 7-10, Rifle Company, Infantry Regiment (Washington: USGPO, 1944), 62-74, and Field Manual 7-10, The Infantry Rifle Company (Infantry, Airborne, Air Assault, Ranger), (Washington: USGPO, 1982), 3-33 - 3-44.

77

up on the Maginot switch position that talked about earlier, so that they could get to know one another. Then, we took every company through an attack sequence. By that time, we had learned one great lesson you either infiltrate or you bypass. The best way to bypass is a wide swing. But, if that is impossible, then you place a high volume of direct fire on him and envelop the position. That is, you go around him. Penetrate by infiltration and bypass. That is what the Germans learned in World War I. In the west we called it von Hutier tactics.*
I

GEN DEPUY:

took the period around Christmas, and put them


I

all in

a defensive position

INTERVIEWER: Remember
treated
if it
it

the regimental treatment rule


left,

in

Vietnam
if

if it

sounded

big,

you

as big? Later, after you


a
air
little

we

received instructions that


rifles

we

ran into something, even


pull

was just
in

something
artillery,

one or two guys shooting

we were to stop,

back,

and then, move forward. It was very frustrating because we could not develop any momentum even when we felt that we could easily handle the situation. The guy on the ground sort of knows best whether or not he can handle the situation.
bring

the

and

GEN DEPUY:
company;
at
it

Here are some of the rules that

we had

if

you heard a machine gun,


if it

it

was

a
it

if

there

was

also mortar
If

fire,

then

it

was

a battalion;

was just

few

riflemen, then

could be a platoon or

less.

the right way. Don't piecemeal your platoons or you

you encountered machine gun and mortar fire, then you ought to go will lose each platoon one at a time.
find out

Under those circumstances, the platoons ought only to probe the area to

where the

enemy

is.

sound principles and thinking the thing through; but, later on, people forgot the key part. They just went with rules such as, "When you hit something, we'll overcome it with fire." As a result, maneuver became very, very slow. People forgot what you were trying to do, which was not to move slowly, but to move securely by knowing what you were up against while still moving as fast as you could.
Well, that
a very sensible rule based on

INTERVIEWER:

was

GEN DEPUY:

That's right.

It

got
all

all

out of whack. The one thing that

really

wanted
If

to avoid
is in

wherever possible, was to


degree
killing

fight

the action on ground chosen by the enemy.

the

enemy

bunkers and has prepared the


ground, you
in
still
it,

killing

ground, you ought to stay out of

it.

Now,
If

if

he's got a 360

don't

pound bomb

the middle of

go into it if you can avoid then that's what you should do.
to

want

it.

you can drop a 2,000

INTERVIEWER:

That's right.

GEN DEPUY:
firing slits,

But,

if

he has a flank, then go around


platoons into the
killing

it,

get around to his rear.

Do something,

but

don't keep sending

rifle

ground. He probably has his bunker with small

and

he'll just

cut your legs off as you

come

in.

Then

you'll try to

evacuate casualties,

*For a discussion on the development of German tactics in World War I, see Graeme C. Wynne, If Germany Attacks: The Battle in Depth in the West, (London: Faber and Faber, Ltd., 1940); reprinted by Greenwood Press, 1976.

78

and

suffer even

more

casualties;

we know

all

about

that.

It's terrible.

try to

come

into our killing grounds, hoping, of course, that

hope the Russians always we've got them organized.


I

INTERVIEWER: Was there when you moved at night in


at night?

anything special that you did with your battalion during World
a

War

II

mounted configuration? Were you ever mounted when you moved

we were told to continue a pursuit at night because our want to lose the momentum. Frankly, in those cases, we just continued at night with the same formation that we had had during the day, which normally was with some tanks up front.
in

GEN DEPUY: Once

a great while

higher headquarters just didn't

INTERVIEWER: An

area

where

feel that

we

are lacking doctrinal knowledge

is in

the area of

conducting mechanized night attacks.*


is a difference of opinion. In a night pursuit, which is done only when and is disorganized, you're just trying to take advantage of his confusion. But, you can have a bad accident while you're doing that you can run into a hornet's nest. Still, on the average, if everybody's pursuing, and the enemy is in bad shape, it's a worthwhile tactic. It's not very scientific, and if you run into some fire, again, you have to decide if you're going to fight or bypass. Mostly, you would like to bypass, but bypassing at night is hard. You lose control because you have to move off the road. The best way to maintain control at night is to go down the road. So, generally speaking, in the night pursuit, if you run into something tough, that's the end of movement until morning. By the time you're able to do anything about it, it's
I

GEN DEPUY:
enemy
is

think there

the

retreating

already daylight.

mounted attack, again, would say that if it's against serious opposition, meaning an organized enemy position, it seems to me that unless you have overwhelming superiority, you would try to bypass and get way behind it and force the enemy to move the following morning. If you were going to make a deliberate night attack would be because you were going to use some infantry at night to seize a critical piece of terrain that maybe, is occupied by enemy antitank guided missiles, which you want out of the way so that in the morning, when you move ahead with your armor, you're not going to be hit by them.
But, with regard to a night attack, a night
I

it

INTERVIEWER:

You're talking now, about dismounted infantry?


infantry, absolutely.

GEN DEPUY:

Dismounted

INTERVIEWER: You do

it

to facilitate

what you are going

to

do

later, right?

*See
4-47
-

Field

Manual

71-2,

The Tank and Mechanized Infantry Battalion Task Force (Washington: USGPO, 1977),

4-51.

79

GEN DEPUY:
once
in
all

That's right. But,

in

respect to

mounted
it

action at night

attack or pursuit

of the vehicles have night vision devices

may be

possible to fight at night as

we do now,

the daytime.

INTERVIEWER: You mentioned

earlier

about a fellow

who

didn't sleep, or didn't eat, while there

was a battle going on. While you were an S-3, and later on, when you were a battalion commander, how did you regulate your eating and sleeping? Obviously, you were doing a lot of
planning, and you took a very active role even in the execution part of a lot of things. So, how did you regulate your time? Did you have a schedule that you tried to follow?

would try to be at the critical places at the critical times. War isn't one pellmell, mad fight, anyway, as you know. There are long periods of boredom, interspersed with moments of horror and terror that's what war is. But, there's a lot of waiting time and a lot of coordination time and normally, at night, the fighting dies down unless you have a night attack. When you're a battalion commander, you're really in control because there is nobody out there but you. There's nobody up in the helicopters. None of that. So, you do everything you can. You fight as long as you can, and when you have to have some sleep, you get some sleep. It's just that simple. You have to plan and control each critical operation. So, if you and your guys have to get some sleep, then you just don't take the next step. You've got control of the situation. When you're young and under 30, you can do fairly well. You can go quite a long time without sleep, and you can bounce back with just a little bit. If you're much older than that, then you have a lot of trouble. guess the ArabIsraeli War was an example in which some Israelis fought for about four days without sleep, at the end of which, you know, they were just finished. At the end of WWII my regimental commander was 27 years old; was 25. The other two battalion commanders were 28 and 26.
Well, as far as being the S-3
I

GEN DEPUY:

was concerned, could pace

myself, and

INTERVIEWER: Going back


commander of the experiences as commander
division

to the

90th,

Second World War, General Weaver, who was the assistant and later commanded the 8th Division, wrote a book about his
it

of the 8th Division. In

he discussed getting ready for a

river

crossing

operation, and mentioned that the preparations for conducting the crossing were very thorough.

How much

of that did he bring with him to the 8th Division from the 90th?*

The main thing to remember about a river crossing is the coordination with the engineers, the coordination between the combat engineers and the assault rifle battalions. We became very good at that. Normally, we had different engineer battalions because we had to use corps engineers. You see, it takes a lot of
I

GEN DEPUY:

don't know, but

we

did cross a lot of rivers.

it takes an engineer battalion to support an an engineer company to take an infantry battalion across, and we had one engineer company on the Saar. That meant two or three echelons or waves per battalion were required. If the river is flowing fast that can cause problems.

engineer battalions to support a

river crossing. In fact,

infantry regiment. You have got to have

at least

*For a discussion of the 8th Division's river crossing preparations see William G. Weaver, Yankee Doodle Town (Ann Arbor: Edwards Brothers, Inc., 1959), 383-418.

Went

to

80

I'll

give you an example. Later on


It

in

the war,

we

crossed the Moselle for a second time, this time

near Koblenz.

must have been


the Rhine.
I

in

March

of 1945.

The Moselle
it's

is

very wide there;

it's

very close to

and flows through a chasm. So, it was flowing, oh, six to seven miles an hour. That's fast. That meant that the boats would strike the far bank about a quarter mile downstream. Now, by the time they returned to the near shore, they would be a half mile downstream from the original launching area. But, you wanted to land at a particular place on the far side. So, demanded enough engineers so that could get my entire battalion together on the other side, all at the same place. We started almost a half mile upstream, and finally, we just drifted across diagonally. But, we made it. Now, a few boats drifted on beyond but mostly, we landed where we wanted to land. But, it was very
it

where

spills into

should say that

a couple hundred yards across

expensive.

used a whole engineer battalion.


to

put a

company

of engineers with each

rifle

do the crossing in a single lift.* In crossing the Saar, after that first schmozola where we lit up the valley and everybody opened fire, the first two companies got across. The boats came back further downstream, and a lot of the engineers abandoned them and wouldn't go across again. So, my guys had to scarf up the boats and drag them up the bank right across from the pillboxes, in the middle of the night. I'd already gone across. My S-3 stayed and he put guys in the boats. They went across and then, just let the boats go; guess some went all the way to the Rhine.
I

company, and that enabled us

'm***,
"-:-.::,..

:,

3ss**

A typical scene as the 90th

Division crossed the Moselle River for the

second time.

*For a discussion of the 90th Division's March 1945 Moselle River crossing operation, see Charles B. McDonald, United States Army in World War II: The Last Offensive (Washington: USGPO, 1973), 246-249, 259.

81

was not brilliant. The two Moselle crossings were super, but the Saar crossing, have to admit, was a little hairy. Those engineers had never seen anything like it, that is, being driven into the boats at the point of a pistol. They probably thought they were in with a bunch of madmen. Remember, we were crossing into the Siegfried Line into a line of pillboxes which were manned. But, generally speaking, the engineers were good. They laid out all the tape and had all the boats in the right place. That tape is very important. About a half mile behind the river, at the end of each tape, was a big white placard with a black number on it. So, the first squad went to number one, the second squad went to number two, the third squad to three, and then, the first squad of the next platoon went to number four, and so on. This is very
This particular engineer battalion
I

helpful at night.

INTERVIEWER: Another

aspect of tactical operations

is

close
air

air

support.

Was

there anything

unusual or noteworthy about

how you

coordinated the close

or

marked your positions?

GEN DEPUY: You mean


INTERVIEWER:
Yes,
sir.

in

World War

II?

GEN DEPUY:
back then
like

Well, generally,

we

didn't have

any close

air

support.

They

didn't

have a system

There was no tactical air control system. When we first went to Mans, they had Air Force officers in trucks with radios with our two lead battalions. That was the only time in the war that saw that the only time! They talked to the fighters, the P-47s and P-51s, and got them to attack the German tanks and troops that the column ran into. It worked pretty well. In fact, it worked very well. think flights were rotated over the head of the column, more or less, as a result of preplanning, and when they got there the Air Force officers on the ground would pick them up by radio and direct them in on the target. This was Task Force Weaver. We had priority because this was the breakout from Normandy. Another story. Across the Saar, needed some emergency resupply. In order to do that had to call back to my regiment on the other side of the river and have them go to division. Division went all the way back to the XIX TAC, which was a part of the Ninth Air Force working with Third Army. They launched fighters that had ammo and medicine packed in the wing tanks. They flew up to where we were and found the corner of the woods where we had put out a couple of fluorescent panels in the form of a cross. We had asked that they drop it in the corner of the woods, northwest of the panel, and they did. So, that was sort of remote control. But, other than that, don't remember any close air support. The first real use of close air support was in Korea. The Air Force made its money in WWII by armed reconnaissance. It just went out and killed

we have now.

Mayenne and

to Le

everything

it

saw.
Did the

INTERVIEWER:

Germans have any


in

close

air

support?

GEN DEPUY:

Apparently they did

Russia, particularly with the Stukas.


lot,

The Stukas had

radios

which was closer to close air support than what we had. But, they didn't use Stukas against the Western Allies because Stukas
that could talk to a regiment

on the ground. They did that a

82

couldn't survive against our fighters. Stukas could survive against Russian fighters but they

couldn't survive against P-47s, P-51s, Hurricanes, and Spitfires. So, they didn't use them at
against us.

all

INTERVIEWER: Toward
they collapsed,

the end of the war,

was

there any point during the campaign


it

noticed that the quality of the

German
in

soldier or his will to fight just evaporated? Did

when you occur when

when

they were

a rout, or

when

the end

was near? Could you

pick a place?

Republic P-47 Mustang "Thunderbolts'

North American P-51 Mustang Fighter

British

Supermarine

Spitfire

German Stuka dive-bombers on

a mission

83

GEN DEPUY:

Well,

really

don't

know

if

should

try to

do

that. Obviously, the

cohesion of the

Germans disappeared

after the Bulge.

Now,

that doesn't

mean

that there weren't isolated

units that fought, but they lost coherence. There

was no
so

longer a continuous front.

German There was no

longer any chance that they could do anything serious.

We

could always find a flank, and

we
that

always outnumbered them.


.

My memory

of

it

isn't

much

that the

they lost organization They just

finally fell apart.

They were

strained

Germans lost heart, but beyond the elastic limit.

INTERVIEWER: Now, when


Germans had
a

the Third Army ran out of fuel and you bellied up chance to regroup. Then you smashed through them again.

to the Moselle, the

GEN DEPUY: We never smashed


on the Moselle, but
intervened.

through them

down

there around Metz.

We smashed through

we were

never able to continue that drive past the Saar. The Bulge
in

The

real

breakthrough was

the Bulge.

INTERVIEWER:

Again, after the Bulge, you had a breakthrough, you had the

momentum, and

you were rolling. You continued to roll right up until the end of the war and the American Armies were ordered to stop, which, in turn, permitted the Russians to drive on into Berlin. Could the Americans have gone on further, at least as far as the 1st Battalion, 357th Infantry Regiment was
concerned?

GEN DEPUY:
further.

Well, at the end of the

war we were

in

Czechoslovakia. Sure,

we

could have gone


It

We were stopped every night at a phase line, but we could have gone on. because there were POW camps out in front of us that were crying to be liberated.
have gone on.
I

was agonizing
Yes,

we

could

It

was just an

effort to

manage

the collision with the Russians.

suppose the best tactical training that people ever got without any great jeopardy and just enough casualties to make it exciting and serious, was as a result of the fighting we did from the end of the Battle of the Bulge to the end of the war. There were many actions, all fought at the company and battalion level. We were mounted in trucks and had five tanks and five tank destroyers. Hopefully, the direct support artillery was in range. It was a small self-contained battalion task force. You were expected to pursue the Germans, and you fought a lot of small engagements. Each one was different. The terrain was different, the enemy weapons and strengths were different, and the circumstances were different, but the mission was always the same to go. Now, to me, that's the best training anybody ever got in the world. You can almost tell which people had that experience, particularly the people who were battalion commanders and had enough force to play with, and who had an independent mission in a zone of their own. The company commander was under the control of the battalion commander, right? The regimental commander just assigned zones. So, it was a battalion commander's war at that time. Well, one of the things that had been impressed upon me by that time, was that we weren't getting any direct fire suppression. We just weren't very good at that, and by that time, you see, we were outrunning much of our artillery. We never had more than about one battalion of artillery available because we were moving too fast. So, we no longer tried to suppress only with indirect fire. My heavy weapons company, "D" Company, had six mortars and eight heavy machine guns.

84

was enough so took .50 caliber machine guns from the trains and made a big would attach the three heavy machine gun platoons to a single .50 caliber platoon. Then company. And, every time we would become involved in one of these little battles, wherever it was, I'd put that company in an overwatch position. didn't call it overwatch then. didn't know that word at the time. put it in a base of fire. The commander had eight heavy machine guns, six .50 caliber machine guns, and the light machine guns of that company, and he had the company to protect it and to help move it. So, two companies were my maneuver companies, and one tell you, it really was company was my fire support company, my base of fire company. marvelous. They just overwhelmed anything that we ran up against. My regret is that it took so
I

didn't think that

I'll

long to figure that out.

and move around him by maneuver. The serious war was really over by the time we got smart. always used to maneuver with the tanks and overwatch with the tank destroyers. If it was a little village, if it was the corner of the woods, if it was a hill with brush on it, whatever or wherever it was, we'd just smother it with fire and get total fire superiority. Then, we'd move around the flank and go get 'em usually from the rear. Almost without
Pin
direct fire
I

him down with

exception they'd

all

come

out yelling "Kamerad, Kamerad."

It

was the only way could


I

figure out

how to get firepower out


I

of a light infantry battalion.

would have loved to command a tank battalion or an armored task force. That's why the mechanized infantry squad, which we were discussing earlier, can be very small, because it can
operate
in

the

fire

envelope of the armored task force.

If it's

a tank

company with

mech

platoon,

we're only talking about 15 or 20


got
is

men who

are going to get out on foot to fight, but

what we've

about 10 or 12 tanks and about four Infantry Fighting Vehicles (IFVs) with automatic

weapons on them that can totally suppress that woodline or those buildings. Now, against Russians don't think that we ought to fight by platoon. We ought to fight at battalion level, which would mean a whole battalion worth of tanks. That would be 30 tanks, and a whole infantry company, maybe 15 IFVs, firing in support of 60 dismounted troops who are going to get close enough to throw hand grenades. And, you're not going to use those 60 guys outside of that fire envelope. You can't, because if you do, they'll get bogged down in some little miserable fire fight. Then you'll have to go and rescue them and get them back out of there while suffering a lot of casualties. So, you don't want to send them deep into the woods; you want to send them right down the woodline so that you can fire right in front of them as they go. That tactic, which is a real Panzer-grenadier tactic, is something that the Germans understand,
I

but one that has been very


direct fire suppression,

difficult to

introduce into the


light infantry

US Army.

It is

an appreciation of heavy
It's

which most of our


it,

has never seen done.

not

in their

bones.

Some

have seen

but very few.

It's

very impressive to see 30 tanks

firing,

15 halftracks

with machine guns on them, and the tanks

firing their .50 calibers

gun
to

the coax and the main gun. There are very few

can stand up to that kind of firepower. That's

in those days, also the bow enemy companies, even battalions, that how you have got to engage the enemy if you have

move somewhere. Maneuver supported by heavy firepower that's the ticket. For instance, the enemy is sitting in a village that blocks the route through a valley and you've got to move down that valley. Or, they're in the woods on the side of the valley, and you've got to get them out of there so that you can go down the valley. There are times when even with armored forces somebody has to clean them out. Now, one thing an armored force can do is just

85

go down the valley and suppress as it goes. But, the valley is still closed to supply, POL, ammo and so on. So, somebody has got to go in and clean it out. Toward the end of the war, while going across Germany, watched the 4th Armored Division. We opened up river crossings for the 4th Armored. watched them conduct what they called reconnaissance by fire, but, really, what it was, was suppression. They suppressed everything that looked suspicious and kept on going, whether it was at the edge of the town, or the edge of a woods, a farm house, or two barns anything they thought might give them trouble. They turned everything on it like a hose, and if there was anything in there, this technique would shut it down. Now, that's fighting by using firepower, and that's why at the Combat Development Experimentation Center, two squads suppressing and one moving, was 60 percent better than one suppressing and two moving. What bothers me is that the US Army has been led mostly by light infantry generals like myself, for a long time. Thank goodness for the General Starrys. We always had a few. We had Abe and Polk, and so on, but we've never had a majority. We've always had a heavy majority of light infantry soldiers, and Vietnam produced a lot more. If you look at how many generals we have, and we have quite a few what, maybe 400? bet you that 50 percent of them were light infantry commanders. Well, 40 percent of them at least. They were the ones we were trying to make heavy infantry commanders.*
trucks,
I I

I'll

INTERVIEWER:
commanders.

Well, the

same

is

true of our group, too.

Most

of us are light infantry

GEN DEPUY:

Sure.

The

point

is,

you have to

learn,

and

it

takes a

little

mental work to get there.

INTERVIEWER: World War and


II

one last question. When you finished up in Germany at the end of reflected back on your experiences, what do you recall were your first thoughts as to what your battalion had accomplished and how?
I'd like

to ask

GEN DEPUY: One


don't blame

of the

comments

that I've
I

made has
I

infuriated the Infantry School.

them

for being infuriated, but


I

honestly concluded at the end of World

War

II,

Now, when

soberly considered what


artillery

had accomplished, that


In

had moved the forward observers of the

means by which Field Artillery forward observers were moved to the next piece of high ground. Once you had a forward observer on a piece of ground, he could call up five to ten battalions of artillery and that meant you had moved combat power to the next observation point more combat power than the light infantry could dispose of. Now, you needed the infantry to do that. You needed the infantry to think that trend has protect them, but the combat power came from this other source, and
across France and Germany.
other words,
battalion

my

was

the

*General Donn A. Starry, USA, Retired. General Starry was commissioned in the Cavalry in 1948, and later commanded the 11th Armored Cavalry Regiment (1970), and V Corps (1976-77). General Starry also served as the Commanding General, TRADOC (1977-81), and Commander in Chief, Readiness Command (1981-83). General Creighton W. Abrams, Jr. See note, page 61. Genera/ James H. Polk, USA, Retired. Commissioned in 1931 in the (1944-45). Later, he Cavalry, General Polk commanded the 3rd Cavalry Group, Mechanized, during World War commanded the 4th Armored Division (1961-62), and V Corps (1965-66). General Polk also served as Commander in Chief, US Army Europe, during the period 1967 to 1971
II

86

you want to be rigorously analytical about what you're really trying to do, it's trying to move combat power forward to destroy the enemy, and the combat power that you are moving forward has been, in the past, mostly artillery, and that is even more true today. The infantry has a lot of ears and a lot of eyeballs. Now, it can call forward even more artillery fire and different kinds of munitions Cannon Launched Guided Projectiles (CLGPs), the Family of Scatterable Mines (FASCAMs),
accelerated ever since.
I

think the infantry has the dirtiest job of

them

all.

But,

if

Dual Purpose Improved Conventional Munitions (DPICMs), high explosive (HE), smoke, and

The infantry is a sensor. It's a sensory organization that works into the fabric of the terrain and the enemy, and can call in all of this firepower including artillery and TAC air that can really do the killing.
illumination,

and soon they

will

also have terminally guided anti-armor munitions.

INTERVIEWER: I've got two questions to ask the answers to which will be of benefit historians who read this transcript. First, what happened to the 90th when the war ended?

for the

Japan so it was held over. All the old 90th and it was filled up with the short-termers. They had a point system, so it was filled up with the people who had just come to Europe in the late arriving divisions, and we started to train for Japan. We had a regiment at Grafenwohr. was the G-3 of the division at that time. We were starting all over again, to train those regiments to go to Japan, and then, of course, in August, the war was over. So, came home and the division came home and was disbanded.
Well, the 90th
to

GEN DEPUY:

was supposed

go

to

troopers went home, but a

lot

of the officers stayed,

INTERVIEWER: When

did

you become the

division G-3?

GEN DEPUY:
maybe two

June, maybe the end of June. Something

like that.

was G-3 over

there for, oh,

or three months.

INTERVIEWER: My
war. Can you
tell

last

question has to do with the treasure that the 90th found at the end of the

us about that?

GEN DEPUY: The Third Army was headed for Leipzig and Dresden through Thuringia. The First Army was headed for the Elbe. The Ninth Army and others were farther north. So, everybody was headed toward Berlin, Leipzig, Dresden, and the northern half of Germany. think there was a rumor that the Germans were going to create a redoubt near Berchtesgaden. The Third Army was
I

stopped and turned to the southeast. Well,


peak, of the Thuringian Mountains, and

had

just

reached the top, the absolute geographic


I

about ready to go down the eastern

was looking down into the valley at Eisenach. was just side when was told to stop and pull back. We pulled back
I

and each unit was given an assembly area. My assembly area was at Merkers. So,
going to get

put the battalion

in

the town, and

was

told,
hell

"You're

new

orders

in

a couple of days."

We had some parties and just


first

had a

of a

good

time. In the middle of the night, probably the

night

we were
and she

there, a

having a baby. Well,

we had
in

a curfew so the midwife couldn't get to the

German woman started woman; rather, the


about to have a baby,

woman

had to go out

the street. The

MPs stopped

her,

said, "I'm

87

and swore at them. And, she said, "Dummkopf Americans! You don't know anything. You're right on top of all the gold of Germany." The next day, the Counter Intelligence Corps found it down there, in this vast salt mine. It was so large we drove jeeps 40 miles an hour through the main tunnels. So, we were kept there for about a week, to guard it and get it out. That was a welcome change. The war was essentially over by this time. Anyway, we guarded it and helped
a kinder,"

up on elevators. All the top generals of the Army Bradley, Eisenhower, Patton everybody can think of, went down on one elevator operated by a German to see it. They went down and played with all the gold. Also, the Germans had all of the art treasures of Berlin stashed
haul
it
I

down

there.

View of the Reichsbank wealth discovered by the 90th Division in the salt mines near Merkers, Germany.

88

General Dwight D. Eisenhower, Supreme Allied Commander, General Omar N. Bradley, Commanding General, 12th Army Group, Major General Manton S. Eddy, Commanding General, XII Corps, Colonel Bernard Bernstein, and others shown touring the salt mines where the German treasure was hidden.

Among

the treasures discovered

in

the salt mines

was this Durer Engraving taken from

the Berlin

Museum.

89

CHAPTER

IV

The Need For Change:


Reflections

On World War
like

INTERVIEWER: The

first

question

would

to ask relates back to your

World War

II

experiences. Please summarize for us

some

of those experiences.*

GEN DEPUY: My
hard to overstate
at the

experiences were just part of the larger experience of the 90th Division.

It is

how ineffective that division was at the beginning, and how very effective it was end and how that enormous change related directly to the quality of its leaders. The natural leaders for company and battalion command were there all the time, as they are in any division, but their emergence and selection for key jobs did not occur until McLain and Van Fleet came along. This whole process remains something of a mystery but perhaps the best way to describe it
is in

terms of

its

opposite

the situation which existed at the beginning. Under the

first

three

one in the States and two in England and Normandy. There was no apparent effort to evaluate and eliminate poor leaders. It must have been either that the top commanders didn't know a poor leader when they saw one, didn't understand enough about war to provide a basis for evaluation, or were indifferent. In any event, we went to war with a batch of incompetents in charge. That incompetence trickled down and caused the tactical failures have described and the incredible casualties. All this was indelibly stamped on my mind and attitude ever after for both good and bad. want to make it very clear that considered the 90th a very gallant division which started to emerge from the doldrums during the Falaise encirclement, matured during the Moselle and Saar operations, and reached its peak efficiency during the Bulge. also came away from the war with a very strong impression that most of the fighting was done by a very small percentage of the soldiers. But, as you would expect, by and large, the officers and
division
I I I I

commanders

the sergeants performed better than the privates.


natural leaders

Now,

that isn't to say that there weren't


in

some
now,
I

who appeared amongst the


I

privates

and corporals. But,

a pinch, then, as
I

would

on officers first, sergeants second, and privates third; that is, if didn't know them individually ahead of time. still feel the Army needs a lot more leaders in proportion to followers, particularly now that war is more dangerous, and equipment is more complex. That means smaller
rely

companies. The larger companies of

WWII exposed

Smaller companies and smaller platoons

many reluctant soldiers to enemy fire. and squads means more leaders. Such smaller units
too

would achieve a much higher percentage of active participation in the battle. Another very strong impression that came away with has to do with what Liddell Hart called the indirect approach. mentioned in our last interview, the last thing you want to do is to attack
I

*This
L.

is

conducted

the second interview conducted on 26 March 1979, with General DePuy, USA Retired. This interview was at his home in Highfield, Virginia. The interviewers were Lieutenant Colonels William J. Mullen and Romie

Brownlee.

90

where he wants you to attack him.* In Vietnam we again learned that lesson the hard way. If you choose to attack the enemy head-on, you have to get through the area that he has prepared for you the killing zones, or whatever you want to call them. He has his fires registered, he has his fields of fire cleared, and he has his bunkers or his positions sited to take advantage of you. So, it's almost the height of stupidity to let that happen. Almost anything is preferable to that. Now, in World War II, when we fought the Germans, they were already very much on the decline. Their strength was low. So, usually, it was relatively easy to find a way around or through them at night. That's one of the reasons why toward the end of the war almost all of our units operated a great deal at night. They did that for two reasons. First, it was easier to penetrate, or bypass, or sneak through without being shot at while en route. Then, once you got through and grabbed a piece of ground that was important in that particular area, the other side had to react. Also, as said before, this allowed you to get your artillery observers up on the high ground so that the combat power of the artillery could be brought to bear on the enemy. really believe, based on my experience, that the combat power provided by the artillery, I'm sorry to say, probably represented 90 percent or more of the combat power actually applied against the enemy. That's why say that getting a forward observer to a high piece of ground and protecting him was the most important function that the infantry performed in that war. That's
the

enemy head-on,

or

not to degrade the infantry,


Lastly,
I

it's

just objective analysis.


fire

have spoken frequently about the importance of direct


not possible to bypass. Sometimes
is
it

suppression. There are times


in

when

it

is

is

necessary to go straight
fire

on the enemy.

In

and an attack on a narrow front through a favorable and protected piece of terrain like a narrow draw or other covered approach. We went into Berle, Luxembourg, during the Bulge, with A Company in the assault and B Company in overwatch. However, A Company quickly masked the fires of B Company and B Company was not well disposed or instructed. We were in a hurry. It turned out all right and we picked up a reserve company and a German headquarters in Berle, but we didn't do it very well. When General Rommel was a first lieutenant in WWI he developed the overwatch and penetration technique into a fine art. All American commanders should read his account in Infantry Attacks.**
these cases the only solution
very heavy suppressive

INTERVIEWER: Would you decorations in World War II?

tell

us the circumstances under which you earned

some

of your

you fellows know, having fought yourselves, decorations go to the wrong people. The privates, the sergeants, and the lieutenants, who do the real fighting, normally perform where there is nobody around to observe it, or they observe one another; but, they are not the people who write up the citations. So, the colonels and the generals get more decorations than they should. hope they all realize that.
All right. Let

GEN DEPUY:

me say first

of

all

that as

*See B.H.

Liddell Hart,

The Decisive Wars of History (Boston:


Frederick A. Praeger, 1967).

Little,

Brown, and Company, 1929), and Strategy, 2nd

ed., revised

(New York:

**See Erwin Rommel, Infantry Attacks. Translated by G.E. Kidde. Washington: Infantry Journal, 1944; reprinted as Attacks, by Athena Press, Inc., in 1979. See also, William E. DePuy, "Reexamining an Old Law 'One-Up and Two Back'?" Army 30 (January 1980), 20-25.

91

Well, the Distinguished Service Cross

received for the crossing of the Moselle River at

Brodenbach.
banks,
the

In this

case,

it

involved crossing the Moselle, climbing up the river's very steep

some vineyards, and then, going down and across one of the deep ravines that led down to encountered some German machine gun people. Next, we river. It was there that my S-3 and
I

climbed back up to the high ground

minor encounters while

all

of this

town
I

Brodenbach about 7 but received one, anyway.


of

of Brodenbach. We had a number of was happening from 2 o'clock in the morning until we took the o'clock that same morning. That action didn't justify a decoration,
in

the rear of the

town

One

Silver Star

was
I

for

an action which involved going through the Siegfried Line at Habscheid


I

and Brandscheid shortly after the Battle of the Bulge. Now, although tried to lead my battalion single file, think told you that it got split in the middle and unfortunately, A Company, which was at the tail of the column, wandered off into a little valley in the middle of the Siegfried Line. So, they were in the bottom of a saucer surrounded by pillboxes, which were occupied by Germans. The company commander, who was new, was rather upset and nervous, and he was taking casualties. Anyway, grabbed a tank platoon, which was not my tank platoon. That was
I I

the problem. The platoon leader refused to go, so

relieved him, took

command
I

of the platoon,

and took it over into that little valley and got A Company out. The first tank that climbed on ran over two stacked Teller mines and blew me off of the rear deck. got on a second tank and we exchanged rounds with a German tank at the bottom of the valley. was standing on the back deck, shooting a .50 caliber machine gun at the pillboxes near A Company. Anyhow, we managed
I

to get

A Company out of there.

Lieutenant Colonel DePuy shown receiving the Distinguished Service Cross from Major General S. LeRoy Irvin,
XII

Lieutenant Colonel

DePuy

shown

Corps Commander.

one of his three Silver Stars awarded during World War II.
receiving

92

received three Silver Stars. Another

was

for

an action which took place between Metz and the


I

Saar on the Nied River.

We

had broken out of our bridgehead, the one

mentioned where the

enemy heavy tank battalion came through and shot out the bridges at Koenigsmacher. We came down to the Nied River, and the assistant division commander, "Wild Bill" Weaver, was standing up on a hill looking down on the river. We had a battalion that had started down. was still the regimental S-3, and General Weaver said to me, "We better go down and grab that bridge down there." The Nied is a very small river, but nonetheless, it's swampy. So, we really needed a bridge. got in my jeep and went down to catch the battalion and have it move directly over to take the bridge. There was a small hill just on our side of the river, and the battalion went around the right side of the hill, which was away from the river, because that's the way the road went. [See Map
I I

17,

page 65]
I

When was
see the
tail
I

halfway there

we came under fire,


around the

so

got out of the jeep and went on foot.


hill.
I

could

would intercept them, so went around the left side of the hill with my radio operator. When had gotten all the way around the left side of the hill and to the bridge, there wasn't anybody there. The company had yet to come around from the other side of the hill, so went across the bridge into a little town the name of which can't remember. As was standing in the street over there waiting for the company, a couple of German soldiers came out and surrendered. went looking for some more and before was through, had collected quite a few. then decided that had better take them back over to our side of the river. So, started walking back across the bridge with them when our battalion suddenly came around the corner and opened fire on them. They scattered all over the place, but we collected about, oh, 10 or 15 of them. Our company stopped firing and came across the bridge. That was kind of a silly action. But, that was that, and that's enough of war stories.
of the battalion going
right side of the

decided that
I

INTERVIEWER: You mentioned


battalion

previously that

it

was
like

really

your preference to fight as a


bit?

and not

in

smaller units.

wonder

if

you might

to

expand on that a

do have a personal preference for fighting at battalion level, because really believe that if it's heavy combat involving large forces, then companies, particularly infantry companies, are too fragile. It was my observation that companies sent on independent missions that is, in a separate terrain compartment normally bogged down. Now, also have come to the conclusion more recently, that not only would like to fight at battalion level, but
Yes,
I I
I

GEN DEPUY:

I'd like

to have the battalions be smaller. That's simply to increase the ratio of leaders to followers

and to get the quality of the battalion up. You've heard


think,

me

say. a lot

about
fight.

that. I'd like to

have a
that,
I

battalion that has a larger percentage of those kinds of people

who

And, you get


is

by having more officers and more sergeants. So, the associated reason
its

not just battlefield

leadership and courage, but also

effectiveness.

and

half-million dollar infantry fighting vehicles.

We now are going to have million dollar tanks We need quality in those tanks. It's absolutely
a tank platoon.

ridiculous to

have a

million dollar tank in the

hands of the survivors of

You need

more than

that.

We are

going to have very powerful fighting machines. The Air Force wouldn't
in

think of putting just

anybody

the cockpit of an F-15, and

we

have to think that same way about

our fighting vehicles.

93

and support from the rear, whether that's artillery with six or seven kinds of sophisticated ammunition, or attack helicopters, or tactical fighters. They also must use engineers and sometimes air defense weapons. The coordination problems are enormous. But a company commander is alone. He's on his own. Maybe he's got a radio operator with him, but he has to do it all. He could well be under fire, personally, and he just hasn't got the people available to help him.
is

Now,

the other thing

that

more and more, the

infantry

becomes the agent

for firepower

At least a battalion commander has a little staff. He's got an S-3 who is his right-hand man. He's got an exec who can go back to the rear with the S-4 and make sure that the replacements and the

knows as much about the enemy as possible, and he's got a lot of radios, whereas his company commanders have only one or two. He's got officers up to the ranks of captain and major to help him. So, he's in a much better position to coordinate the application of all that combat power and to synchronize the actions of his battalion and all of its supporting elements. If you rely on a company commander to do that, it's almost inevitable that not every time, but most of the time, the company will not develop all that combat power. That's why want to see the Army move that way, toward smaller battalions
get up. He's got an S-2
tries to

ammo

who

see to

it

that he

as the basic fighting unit.


I'm sure that a
in

the long run they are going to do

it.

Right

now

there

is

great resistance to

it.

It's

new

idea.

It

offends peopie. Lieutenant colonels don't want smaller battalions. They don't want
outfit.

to

be told that they can't control a big


that's
true.

Company commanders

don't want smaller

companies. They don't want to be told that they are too busy to develop the combat power. But,
the fact
is,

all

We've got
the
is

to get these battalions smaller, better

and smaller

in

and more of them. Then, we


artillery,

have to fight so that the battalion commander coordinates the infantry with the tanks, the
air,

the

air

defense, the helicopters, and the engineers. He's


I

a better position to

anybody else. He has to fight within what call a single terrain compartment. If company over into another valley to operate independently, where he can no longer control it, then that company must have tanks, infantry, and artillery observers, and the company commander must coordinate the combined arms team. But, don't want them to do that very often because if the fighting is serious in the other valley, the company isn't big enough to do it.
I

do that than he has to send a

ROTC training ROTC* describe the program of instruction for the pre-World War
INTERVIEWER:
Recently

we

asked you about the

program. Please

briefly

II

GEN DEPUY:
military history.

Well,

in

the academic environment of the school, as


lot

recall,

there

was a

little bit

of

There was a
Its

about

how an

officer behaves,
like that.

how you
lot

got calling cards printed,


drill.

about "Rank Hath


straight,

Privileges,"

and things

There was a

of

Because
liked

we had
it.

small regiment of cadets there

were

a lot of the cermonial type things


all

how
in

to stand up

how to march, and we had the six-week summer camp at Fort Snelling, where the 3rd
to salute,

how

of that sort of thing,

and everybody

Then,

Infantry

was

charge.

It

was

very old regiment,

filled

with a

lot

of fine sergeants.

It

didn't

seem

to

me

that the officers spent

*For an overview on typical


ed., 4vols(Harrisburg:

ROTC

training during the

mid and

late

1930s see, The R.O. T.C. Manual: Infantry, 21st

The

Military Service Publishing

Company,

1939).

94

very

much

time with us, but the sergeants were great.


level,
it.
I

It

was

all

"nuts and bolts" type training.

It

was a squad
That's about

machine gun level, rifle level type of training might go on to say something about the ROTC
Please do.

by far the best training

we

got.

right

now,

if

you don't mind.

INTERVIEWER:

GEN DEPUY:
Israeli training

Not without a

lot of

controversy, several years ago, based on our appreciation of

and our general feeling that officer training in our Army was pegged several notches too high, General Gorman and decided that the goal of ROTC plus the basic course should be to qualify all lieutenants for lieutenant's jobs. A lieutenant in the combat arms graduating from ROTC should be between skill levels 2 and 3 in terms of the Skill Qualification Tests. That would mean that in the Armor, for example, he would be qualified as a tank commander. In the Infantry he would be qualified as a squad leader. The basic course which he then attends after graduation, could pick up on that level of expertise and make him a lieutenant platoon leader. Now, think that that's right, and wish that it had been that way back when was in ROTC. never went to a basic
I

course nor did

ROTC teach

us to be platoon leaders.
give us your significant impressions on

INTERVIEWER: Could you


weapons,
vehicles,

German and US equipment,

and

tactics?

GEN DEPUY: Well, thought the German machine pistol, which was an area suppression weapon, had great advantages, whereas we were trained for point targets with rifles. So, the Germans, it would seem to me, were ahead of us there. Also, their tank guns and antitank guns were superior to ours. If you'll read the history, you'll find that the Germans were behind the Russians at the beginning, but they then caught up and surpassed everybody at the end of the war, in terms of the size of their antitank and tank guns up to 88 millimeters. Their weapons were manufactured in such a way that they were easier to maintain and they operated better in the mud, in dampness, and in cold weather. You asked a moment ago whether or not we used their equipment or they used ours. We really didn't use their equipment very much because we had such a plentitude of our own, and our supply system was geared to our types of ammunition, and so on. Most units picked up a few German Volkswagens and trucks and things for fun, but not very seriously. might say that we did, in fact, like the German Panzerfausts and that was because our 2.75-inch rockets didn't have the penetration capability of the Panzerfausts. A lot of units did pick up and carry the Panzerfausts with them. [See photo, page 67]
I I

INTERVIEWER: Was there anything about their tactics, good

or bad, that impressed

you?

that our tactics didn't.

Germans involved a lot of direct fire suppression They didn't have as much indirect fire suppression, as much artillery, as we did, but they had mortars, and direct fire suppression, coupled with a lot of movement. They also did a lot of talking. You could hear the German sergeants, Feldwebels, shouting to their men all
Yes, the infantry tactics of the

GEN DEPUY:

95

the time during an attack, giving instructions,


fire

"Go this way, go


it

that way,

more
If

fire

over here, put


talk
it

by the corner of the

field."
is

Our fellows

didn't talk

up very much.

you don't

up,

it

means that nothing much

going to happen.
the soldiers carried with them into

INTERVIEWER:
I

Last

week we discussed what

forgot to ask you

how

they had streamlined their loads by the end of the

Normandy and war. What were they

carrying

when

the war ended?

GEN DEPUY:
more
of

I'm not sure that

can answer that question.

think that

one thing they

carried

was grenades, because as infantrymen season themselves, they begin

to be impressed
isn't

with the value of grenades.


necessarily good, but
it's

We

probably carried less small arms ammunition, which


true. But,

more machine gun ammunition of all kinds, because we tried to emphasize direct fire suppression with machine guns. So, we had to carry that. Whenever we went into an area where our tanks couldn't go with us crossing a
undoubtedly
carried a lot
river or

we

conducting a night attack

in

a forest

we

usually carried mines.

guess, also,

we

probably paid more attention to making sure that

we had

pyrotechnics.

The

better

we

got with

them, the more

we

used them.
the area of

INTERVIEWER:
S-3.

In

command and

control, please

comment on how you

controlled

your companies as a battalion commander, and

how you

controlled the battalions as a regimental

Our squads were not well-trained. Sometimes the platoon sergeants would take one element, one good sergeant would take another element, and the platoon leader would take the third element, and that's about the way they operated. Now, this caused me to use companies would give a whole a little bit like the Army tends to use platoons today. In other words,
I

GEN DEPUY:

company a
of the lead
I

rather simple mission, with the objective being located not too far
I

away

"Go take

the three buildings at the edge of the village" type of thing.

usually

commanded from

the vicinity

of the orders were issued eyeball-to-eyeball go along with the lead company and when they ran into trouble, I'd have the second company commander right with me, and usually the third company commander overwatching somewhere. then would tell the company that was behind me, exactly where to go, and go with them. In other words, if the first company ran into trouble and dropped down into a base of fire, then I'd go with the next company and, maybe, the tanks. The tank destroyers would be overwatching. So, with one company and the tanks, we would try to go around a flank or try to get behind them. So, it was all a very direct, close type of coordination. Infantry radios didn't work too well, but
all

company, and almost


it

direct orders.

would

call

positive control. I'd

we used them whenever we


moved
that
I

had

to.

When we were
I

mobile and going cross-country,

always

in

column.

never went on two routes.

didn't like that technique

because

didn't think

had good enough control.

We often

used

artillery

radios for

command and

control because

they were

much

better than ours.

96

INTERVIEWER: As
battalion

the regimental S-3, did you do the

same

sorts of things as

you did as

commander?
In all

GEN DEPUY:

cases where there

was

a deliberate action, like a river crossing or a deliberate

attack as around Metz, most of the coordination

was done

eyeball-to-eyeball with the battalion

commanders. But, it wasn't a question of drawing up a plan on paper and carrying it out to them. That never happened. The paper plan, to the extent one existed, consisted only of an overlay.
guess

we

wrote a few regimental orders for the history book, but

it

was almost always going out

and

talking to a battalion

commander and

agreeing with him, usually on the ground, about

how

we

were going to do something, then going to another battalion


it.

commander and

agreeing with

him on the ground as to


really

the only

way to
in

how we were going to do So, they had total participation, which is When we were going across France, we occasionally did go on parallel do
it.

routes.

Once

awhile we'd have to


But,

call

a battalion

commander on
it

the radio and

tell

him to go

someplace

else.

when

it

was

serious fighting,

almost always involved face-to-face

coordination.

INTERVIEWER: During the Second World War you encountered a number of people who, for one reason or another, were either famous and/or colorful. One such individual that can think of is General Weaver, who was the assistant division commander and later, commander the 8th Division. Please comment on such people who stand out in your mind.
I

GEN DEPUY:
I'll

Well, "Wild Bill"

Weaver was much loved by everybody. He was

tall,
I.

thin, rather

worn looking chap, who apparently had been an absolute tiger in World War He was an eccentric. tell you two little stories about Wild Bill. The first one occurred during the Falaise Gap action when he was with another regiment. This regiment went into the town of Le Bourg-St. Leonard, which was just southwest of Chambois, where the cork was finally put into the bottle. Anyway, in the middle of the night, think it was the
I

2nd Panzer

Division, or the

2nd

SS

Panzer Division, decided to get out of the trap by going


in

through Le Bourg-St. Leonard. So, a quite exciting fight took place


of the night. Wild
Bill,

the town during the middle

who

always wore a

nightshirt,

was aroused from


grabbed
in his

Leonard.

He slapped on
in

his steel

helmet and
that.

his pistol belt,


still

his

bed in Le Bourg-St. aide, and took personal


his

command
While

the streets of Le Bourg-St. Leonard, while

long, white nightgown. Well,

believe me, the division

remembered

He was an

utterly fearless

man.
it,

and ordered us to take the town. We held the northern third of the residential area, and the entire industrial area, which included a large steel plant. In addition to some very large Bessemer converters, there was a tall water tower. Occasionally, we would sneak our artillery observer up the water tower at night, and then he would set up on our side of the water tower and peek around and adjust artillery fire. Wild Bill came to visit one day and wanted to go up the water tower. He later had a heart attack when he was with the 8th Division, but he obviously was already suffering from heart trouble because he tired very easily. So, he said to me, "Come on, DePuy, we're going to go up on that water tower."
at Maizieres-les-Metz General Patton got tired of reading

about

97

said, "That's a

dumb

thing to do, General."


I

Anyway, we
him. So,

started up

and got about halfway when

he just ran out of steam. Of course,


long time while Wild
Bill

was behind
I

caught

his breath.

had to wait there, halfway up, for a thought he wouldn't make it, but he finally did. Like a

we

bulldog, he got to the top.

By

this time, of course,

we had

attracted quite a bit of attention.


this

And,

while
if

we were up

there, a

German

assault

gun

fired a

round through

empty water

tank. Well,

you think you've ever heard a large bang-clang and resonating sound, you should hear an armorpiercing round go through an empty water tank. That encouraged us all to leave and we scurried back down. But, anyway, he spent almost all of his time while he was up on the water tank around on the front side where he got a very good view of everything. That gives you some flavor of the man. He was clearly the most colorful and, would say, the most loved old codger we ever had in
I

the division.

Major General
William G.

Major General

Weaver

George Bittman Barth

INTERVIEWER: Would you

say a few words about your regimental commander, Colonel,

later

Major General, George B. Barth?*

*Major General George B. Barth was commissioned a second lieutenant of Infantry in 1918, and later branch transferred to the Field Artillery. Assignments after World War II included service as Commanding General, 25th Infantry Division Artillery (1950-51), Commanding General, 5th Infantry Division (1952), and Chief, Joint Military
Assistance Group, Greece (1952-55).

98

GEN DEPUY:
before he

Well, Bittman Barth

was

sent to the 90th after Colonel


I

man. He was my favorite. the man. He was wounded very seriously


landed right
in

He was Chief of Staff of the 9th Division Sheehy was killed. He was a marvelous and strong cannot say enough about the integrity, the quality, and the strength of

was an

artilleryman.

in

Maizieres, just at the end of that night attack


in

mentioned. He was underneath an overhanging concrete ramp


front of him

the steel plant, but the round

and

practically

blew

off his leg. But,

he pulled himself back together at

Walter Reed after a long, long time, and then, went on to become a brigadier, and eventually went

He commanded the initial task force of the 24th Divison in Korea. He ended up commanding a division at Indiantown Gap, the 5th Division, think it was. He was a splendid man. You see, he had a regiment in which there was only one other Regular officer, Buddy Ryder. So, the leavening of the professional army was pretty thin. There may have been one or two lieutenants from the Military Academy, but, if so, they went unnoticed among the general herd. Barth was the soul of the Army in the 357th Infantry. He was the rock on which we rebuilt a fighting regiment. It was all because of his strength of character compassion mixed with
to Korea.
I

firmness.

INTERVIEWER: Two names


in

that

we

picked up

in

reading about the division surface significantly

your

later career,
if

General Talbott and General Stilwell. Did you


relationship with him?*

know

General Talbott at the

time, and

so,

what was your


Well,

knew General Talbott only in the sense that he was the S-3 of the 359th during most of the time that was the S-3 of the 357th. Then, we both went on to command battalions. So, didn't really know him well at the time; just knew of him. He was clearly a superior officer. Since the war, as you know, General Talbott and have become great friends.
I
I

GEN DEPUY:

We both commanded the 1st Division in Vietnam, and both of us Division Society. We also served together at TRADOC. General
soldier.

have been presidents of the


Talbott

1st

was and

is,

a splendid

and as a regimental S-3, saw quite a lot of him. We've been close friends ever since, and have done a lot of things together. He came up and pinned on my lieutenant colonel's leaves in the little town of Binsfeld, in Luxembourg, in the middle of the Battle of the Bulge. He later became G-3 of XXII Corps, commanded by Ernie Harmon, who previously had been the 2nd Armored commander. Of course, from an operational standpoint,
General Stilwell
division G-3,
I

was the

*Lieutenant Genera/ Orwin


California National

C.

Talbott,

USA

Retired,

was commissioned

second

lieutenant,

Infantry,

in

the

received a Regular commission. During the Battle of the Bulge, he commanded the 1st Battalion, 359th Infantry Regiment. Later assignments included service as Executive Officer to General Lyman L. Lemnitzer while Chief of Staff of the Army, Chairman of the Joint Chiefs of Staff, Commander in
in

Guard

1941,

and a year

later,

Chief,

European Command, and Supreme

Division (1968-69);

(1969-73);

Allied Commander, Europe (1959-63); Commanding General, 1st Infantry Commanding General, US Army Infantry Center and Commandant, US Army Infantry School and Deputy Commanding General, US Army Training and Doctrine Command (1973-75).
Stilwell,

General Richard G.

USA

Retired,
II,

to the Infantry. Following

World War

was commissioned in the Corps of Engineers in 1938, and later transferred General Stilwell served as the Chief of Staff, US Army Military Assistance
General, 1st

Command, Vietnam

(1963-65);

Commanding

Armored

Division (1967-68);

Commanding

General,

XXIV

Corps (1968-69); and Commander in Chief, United Nations Command, Korea. Since 1981, General as the Deputy Under Secretary for Policy, Department of Defense.

Stilwell

has served

99

Dick Stilwell really ran the 90th Division during the whole time that he

was

there, certainly during

McKelvie and Landrum's time. McLain was a


Stilwell

fine, great leader, a wise man, and just. He and Dick worked magnificently together. But, under the first two generals, Dick ran the division. Dick had to do it there wasn't anybody else to do it except, perhaps, for "Hanging Sam" Williams

before he

was

unfairly
it

removed.

think

it

was

while

Van

Fleet

was

the division

Dick

left.

Actually,

was Dick

Stilwell

work for him in 1950, and then, over to become J-3, Military Vietnam (MACV), when he became the MACV Chief of Staff. Then, we were together in the Pentagon, again. He is, of course, really a splendid man. A very, very, smart, tough, professional soldier, I'm one of his greatest admirers.

who brought me

brought

me

into the Central Intelligence

commander that Agency to Assistance Command,

Lieutenant General Orwin C. Talbott

General Richard G. Stilwell

INTERVIEWER: You completed

your tour

in

Europe as the G-3 of the 90th Division.

Is

there

anything significant about that assignment?

GEN DEPUY:

No, not

really.

When
fillers,

became

the G-3 right after the war, the division

was

designated to go to Japan, so

we were filled up

with low point men.


train at
first,
it

people home, received low point

and started to

We sent almost Grafenwohr. We had a


we
first

all

of our

own

regiment at

Neustadt, one at Grafenwohr and one at Amberg. At

had an exclusive franchise on


exercises there, and
learned.
I

Grafenwohr
planned to
training

no other

division

used

it.

We

opened

up, had the

train for

Japan

there.

We

planned to use everything

we had

wrote the

programs with the help of the staff and consultations with a lot of people. But, I'll tell you, they bore no resemblance to the training programs that we had had before the war. Our training programs were very practical with lots of live fire and lots of direct fire suppression at all levels.

100

you were the G-3 of the 90th Division. We'd be interested in what your thoughts were regarding a career in the Army. Did you have any thoughts about getting out? What led you to stay in the Army and make it a career?
Well,
II

INTERVIEWER:

when World War

came to

a close,

would be an option to stay in. came back to the United States very shortly after our victory over Japan because was a "high point man." There is a small story here. In August of 1945 General Herb Earnest who commanded the 90th Division at the end of the war, took a party of battalion and regimental commanders to Bad Tolz to spend some time with General Patton in a seminar to review lessons learned. was then G-3. General Earnest and stayed with General Patton in his house on the Tegernsee. His aide, Codman, was going home and General Patton asked me if would like to be his aide. was astounded. told him would do whatever he wanted but thought he should know that had orders to Leavenworth. He told me should go to Leavenworth and stay in the Army which is what did.
Well,
I

GEN DEPUY:
I

assumed

that

would get

out.

didn't realize that there

Lieutenant Colonel
a reprieve

DePuy during
in

from combat

May

1945.

Major DePuy while the S-3, 357th Infantry Regiment, near Metz in October 1944.

101

CHAPTER V
Education Of

A General Staff Officer

you about your impressions of the Command and General Staff College at that particular point in time. You were a combat veteran who had commanded a battalion and had been a S-3 at every level. What did Leavenworth have to teach you in 1945?
I'd like

INTERVIEWER:

to ask

one since everybody there considered himself to be an expert. So, the poor instructors had a very hard time. The classes were very large, 500 in a one room type of thing. But, the fact of the matter is, that learned a lot. learned the right words and terms to explain a lot of things that we had done, but had never taken the trouble to define. The one part where did poorly was the G-3 part, just because thought knew it. did better in the G-1, G-2, and G-4 areas because didn't pretend to know much about them. Now, the course went to was only four months long. It was one of two interim courses; it was the wartime course slightly expanded. It was much like the CAS 3 Course which is now so popular. It was very much a regimental and division level course with a little bit about corps, with a heavy emphasis on operations. There was also a logistics course going on, but it was entirely separate. So, we didn't get much of that, and they didn't get much of ours. Both courses were about the
peculiar
I I I I I I I

GEN DEPUY:

Well, the atmosphere

was a

was run by the was just as large and located in the big riding hall. They just had a partition the middle, and half of it was the ground course and the other half was the service course. assumed that was going back to Europe because they weren't Following Leavenworth, went to the Pentagon to see a letting everyone out quite yet. On my way back to Europe, hometown friend of mine, Lieutenant Colonel Chuck Wilson, now a retired major general. He was working for Colonel Michaelis. Mike Michaelis was in the 101st during World War and was now
size in terms of students.
logistics course, called the service course,

same

The

Army down

Service Forces.

It

II

running the procurement branch of G-1.* They asked


applied for the Regular Army, and they gave

me how
I

felt

about being integrated.

me a job. So, didn't go back to Europe. That's the shop of the War Department. George Forsythe was there, Art Collins and a lot of others were also there, and Mike Michaelis was the boss. worked there for a couple of years. During that time was integrated into the Regular Army. It was always an attractive thing to me. Also, the pay was a lot better than teller's pay in my father's bank. In fact, it was $535.00 a month plus allowances. believe bank tellers in South Dakota at that time, were lucky to make $150.00, and that's about where would have started. So, number one, enjoyed the Army and
reason
I

went

into the G-1

*GeneralJohn H. Michaelis, was commissioned a second lieutenant in the Infantry in 1936. During the Korean War he commanded the 27th Infantry Regiment 950-51 Other assignments included service as the Commanding General, US Army, Alaska (1959-62); Commanding General, V Corps (1962-63); Commanding General, Allied Land Forces, Southeastern Europe (1963-66); Commanding General, Fifth Army (1966-69); and Commander in Chief, United Nations Command, US Forces, Korea, and Eighth Army, Korea (1969-72).
(

102

felt

comfortable with
to

it,

and secondly,

really didn't

want

to

go back

to

South Dakota.
I

found

Washington
stay. That's
I

be an exciting place for a young fellow

right off the reservation, so

decided to

about
in

worked
in

G-1

how complicated my decision was. of the War Department. My job there was the
off the draft.

All

Volunteer Army.

arrived just

at the time

we went
enlisted

There were three


in

officers, a colonel
I

and two lieutenant colonels,


in

involved

procurement

the whole Pentagon, and


I

was

the only officer involved

the

The only one! went up to New York with Major General St. Clair Street from the Air Force. The Air Force was still part of the Army at that time, and he was the head of the recruiting service. went up with him, and he signed a $1,000,000 contract with N.W. Ayers Co., for recruiting advertising. We have the same company today. But, we didn't do very
enlisted volunteer program.
I

We had a very small Army in those days. had a graph right behind my desk and, as recall, needed to recruit about 15,000 men a month in order to meet our requirements, and that graph we on my little chart ran around 12,800 to 13,000, maybe 13,500. Every month we were falling a couple of thousand men short. So, by the time the Korean War came along and Congress reinstituted the draft, we were very much understrength. We tried all sorts of inducements but none of them worked very well. The general atmosphere right after World War was that the war was over, enlisted salaries were very low, and there wasn't anything very glamorous about military
well.
I I

II

service. So,

it

just didn't

work.
with the

INTERVIEWER: Were you


at the

inflicted

same

reduction

in

rank that a

lot

of officers suffered

end of the war, or were you able to

retain

your rank of lieutenant colonel?

Most of the colonels were reduced. Dick Stilwell reverted back to lieutenant colonel. just happened to be under the wire. was promoted in January of 1945, and believe if had been promoted a month later, would have been reduced back to major, but just missed it.
I I I I I I

GEN DEPUY:

INTERVIEWER: Sir, according to your biographic sketch, the next significant step is your tour at the Army Language School learning Russian but then being posted to Hungary as the assistant
attache.
Is

there anything that you would

like

to

tell

us about that?

GEN DEPUY:
because
the
I

Well,

can only say that

went
I

to the

Army Language School

to study Russian

thought that Russia was important.


I

was

little bit

tired of the tactical side of things at


I

moment, and thought that that would be a good thing to do. It was and learned it. But, unfortunately, as was about to go to Russia to become assistant attache, all of the American attaches in Hungary were ejected, and was diverted. So, all of my Russian went for naught and Hungarian is an impossible language. never did learn to speak it. It was rather an exciting time in that the Communists were in the process of consolidating their power. Cardinal Mindszenty was in the legation. Laszlo Rajk was arrested and all sorts of things were happening during that time. But, it all culminated when broke my leg while skiing and had to come home. first entered a Hungarian hospital, but they did such a bad job on my leg that had to come back to Munich where the Americans redid it. then came back to Walter Reed and was in Walter Reed when the Korean War broke out. So, there is not much more to be said about that.
I I I I I I I

103

INTERVIEWER: At one

point, though,

you actually became the acting attache.


left.

GEN DEPUY:
in

Yes, that's right.

The attache had

There was a very rapid turnover

in

Hungary

those days.
that because the Hungarians

INTERVIEWER: Was
country?

were heaving the Americans out

of the

GEN DEPUY:

Yes. The Hungarian

Communist regime was

hostile to the

Americans
I

at that time,

so there was a high turnover. Personna non grata was the term they used, and
attaches and assistant attaches were ejected from the country.*

guess about four

INTERVIEWER:
leg.

Well, you

must have been unique then, getting booted out because of

a broken

GEN DEPUY:
of

think
I

if it

hadn't been for the broken leg,

probably would have gone the same

Hungary which almost changed the whole pattern game permanently something that did not want. We really were not trained to collect information in a clandestine manner although at the time, Eastern Europe was a boiling pot of clandestine activity. We military chaps were amateurs. But, one day we received a message from Washington to go to Mohacs to report on the Danube bridge which the Germans had dropped in late 1944, as the Russians started their envelopment of Budapest. Some intelligence analyst in Washington was trying to complete the book there was one being complied on each country and there were reports that the bridge was being rebuilt. So, one sunny autumn day in 1949, put on my Air Force fur collared flight jacket no hat civilian trousers and shirt, and stirred up my Hungarian jeep driver a blond crew cut chap in a field jacket with no hat and we drove south to Mohacs. Mohacs, by the way, is the site of the defeat of the Hungarian Army by the Turks. It lies 10 miles or so west of the main highway into Budapest from the southeast, which is the link with Rumania along the north bank of the Danube, and with Belgrade, the capital of Yugoslavia. It is about 75 miles south of Budapest. The trip down was uneventful and the bridge, it turned out, was not being rebuilt. As we returned to the main road leading north to Budapest, we encountered a Russian military convoy proceeding north. It consisted of US jeeps, 2 /2-ton trucks, stake and platform 10-ton trucks, plus artillery and towed antitank guns. The convoy seemingly was endless. So, as we sat there at the road junction, we counted the vehicles and recorded bumper numbers. The march units were closed up but there were gaps between serials. After an hour we became impatient and pulled into a gap. The only identification on our jeep was a small 6 by 8 inch enamel
route as the others.
did have
in

one experience

my life.

It

almost turned

me

into the intelligence

on the right base of the windshield. Fortunately, we looked like all of the Russian jeeps in the convoy. Anyway, about 30 miles up the road, the column turned into a huge forested area on

US

flag

(New

*For an overview of the political situation in Hungary during this period, see Paul York: Columbia University Press, 1962), 103-158.

E.

Zinner, Revolution in

Hungary

104

the right or east of the highway.

A large group of officers and MPs were on


in

the road and there

was
in

no way

we

could avoid turning

so

we

tucked up close behind a 2 /2-ton truck and scooted


1

with the convoy. The delegation on the road looked at us hard but didn't stop us.
Inside the forest the road

swept around

in

a large circle.

We were moving

counterclockwise.

the right, at intervals of perhaps 200 to 300 yards, were parking areas and bivouacs, most of

To them
I

occupied with Russian troops and equipment. After about a mile, the element
turned into one of these areas and

we were
and
a bit

following

we were

alone on the circular inner road

nervous

might add. Soon


road.
parks,

we came up

We could see

behind a Budapest municipal water sprinkler wetting down the no way out except to follow the circular road. It led us by tank parks, artillery
I

kept notes and counted and command posts with lots of radio antennae, etcetera. everything. Lo and behold, we finally came back to the point near the main highway where we had entered. The MPs were still there and we chose not to exit through them so we started our second trip around the cricuit. After more counting and more nervousness we reached the far side of the circle and found a small firebreak road which we followed to the east. It finally took us out of the
forest
In

and

we found
I

back roads which

led to the

main highway north of the Russian encampment.


In

the legation

stayed up most of the night preparing a very voluminous and detailed report.
identified divisions

and regiments. It turned out that we had seen ninety percent of the 17th Guards Mechanized Division moving from the USSR to Hungary in preparation for the invasion of Yugoslavia from the north. In those days we had no satellite photography or other coverage. My report on a scale of A to F for reliability of the source, and 1 to 5 for accuracy of the information, was rated A1 For a short time became the darling of the US intelligence community. It nearly did me in professionally. It nearly sucked me into the intelligence business permanently, but after one tour with the Central Intelligence Agency, was able to squirm out of an assignment to G-2, US Army, Europe (USAREUR), in 1952, and resume my career as a tactical officer with infantry units and staffs.*
those days
. I I

we

had a book of Russian bumper numbers which

INTERVIEWER:

After recovering from leg operations, you put on a cloak and dagger and
Intelligence

went

to

work for the Central

Agency

(CIA).

Would you comment on what your

duties were?

Well, let me say that my leg was really banged up very badly. They had to operate and put in a lot of screws, wrap wire around it and so on. So, was at Walter Reed in June, when the Korean War started, and about September, was able to get around a little bit on crutches in a half-shell cast. really wanted to do something. Dick Stilwell was just starting up an element in the CIA, which had to do with functions such as guerrilla warfare and things like that. It became the active part, not the clandestine intelligence part, of the Agency. So, as my leg slowly

GEN DEPUY:
it

on

got better, and without any previous experience of any kind,


operations, believe
it

was placed

in

charge of China
to the Far East

or not.
I

For a couple of years,

busied myself with those kinds of things which took


really
all
I

me

on many, many

trips.

guess that's
in

periphery of China, and

spend a lot of time around the Thailand, Taiwan, Japan, and Okinawa. It was a very active life and
to say.
I

want

was

to

*For a discussion of the events surrounding Stalin's deployment of troops into Hungary for possible use against Tito, see Duncan Wilson, Tito's Yugoslavia (London: Cambridge University Press, 1979), 60-72.

105

rather exciting.

have to say

in

retrospect, that

it

was not

all

that productive, but everybody

was

working hard. At that time, you see, China was

enemy. Remember, it wasn't long after the Korean War began when China intervened. So, I'll go this far, we were involved in very active covert operations against China. You asked how felt about sitting out the war in Korea. Well, I'll have to say that was actively employed in government service. When left the Armed Forces Staff College in 1953, even though the war was nearly over, tried very hard to get to Korea. But, instead, they sent me back to Europe for the third time. went back for a fourth time, later. There is just something about Europe; just seemed to go that way.
clearly the
I

INTERVIEWER: Was
previously at

Armed Forces Staff College merely Leavenworth, or was there a different curriculum?
the

a repeat of

what you had done

was all "joint," and there was a fascinating group of people in that particular class. Fred Weyand was there. He was the best golf player. Jack Norton and George Forsythe were both there, as was Harry Kinnard who was on the faculty. Chesarek was there, and so was Dutch Kerwin.* It was a very relaxed kind of a course. lived in Washington and commuted with Colonel Art Allen and Chesarek, and played golf everyday. have to tell you, didn't get much out of that course; don't think anybody did. It was a six month course. Joint doctrine is so vague because the really important things are done by the
It
I
I I I

GEN DEPUY:

Oh, there was an entirely different curriculum.

service elements, not by the joint elements.

We didn't get
I

into joint operations

except at the

joint

planning

level,

and

that's pretty thin gruel. So,

did not hold the

Armed Forces

Staff College

course
officers

in

very high regard.

The Navy held


by and
large,

it

in

such low regard that they sent mostly supply

and people

like that,

although they did send Admiral Nimitz's son,

who

very shortly

thereafter, left the Navy. But,

they sent the second team, and so did the Air Force.

INTERVIEWER: Was
sideshow
in

the

Armed Forces

Staff College in the normal progression, or

was

it

little

the Army's educational system?

*General Frederick C. Weyand, USA Retired, was commissioned through ROTC at the University of California, in 1938. During World War II, he served in the China-Burma-India Theater. Other assignments included commanding the 25th Infantry Division (1964-67), II Field Force, Vietnam (1967-68), and the US Military Assistance Command, Vietnam (1972-73). General Weyand also served as Chief of Staff of the Army (1974-75). Lieutenant Genera/ John Norton, USA Retired, was commissioned in the Infantry in 1941. During World War II, he commanded a battalion in the 82nd Airborne Division in the European Theater. Other assignments included commanding the 1st Cavalry Division (1966-67), and the Combat Developments Command (1970-73). Lieutenant Genera/ George I. Forsythe, USA Retired, was commissioned in the Infantry in 1939, through ROTC at the University of Montana. During World War II, he served in both the Pacific and the European theaters. Other assignments included commanding the 1st Cavalry
Division (1968-69), and the Combat Developments Command (1969-70). General Forsythe also served as the Project Manager, All-Volunteer Army (1970-72). Lieutenant General Harry W.O. Kinnard, Jr., USA Retired, was he served with the 501st Parachute Infantry Regiment. commissioned in 1939, in the Infantry. During World War Other assignments included commanding the 1 1th Air Assault Division, Test (1963-65), the 1st Cavalry Division (196566), and the Combat Developments Command (1967-69). Genera/ Ferdinand J. Chesarek, USA Retired, was commissioned in the Field Artillery in 1938. During World War he commanded the 28th Field Artillery Battalion in the European Theater (1944-45). Other assignments included commanding the 5th Field Artillery Group (1954), the 4th Logistics Command (1961-62), and the Army Materiel Command (1969-70). Genera/ Walter T. Kerwin, Jr., USA Retired, was commissioned in the Field Artillery in 1939. Duty assignments included commanding the 3rd Armored Division Artillery (1961-63), Field Force, Vietnam (1968-69), the Continental Army Command (1973), and the Forces Command (1973-74). General Kerwin also served as the Vice Chief of Staff of the Army (1974-78).
II II II

106

GEN DEPUY:

Well,
it

don't really

know what

the career managers would say, but

think

in

the

current parlance,

was one
it

of the "brownie points" that you

were supposed

to get.

INTERVIEWER:

So,

was one

of the holes

in

your ticket that had to be punched.

GEN DEPUY:

Yes.

INTERVIEWER:
1953.

We would now like to talk about your next tour in


staff,

Europe, which occurred

in late

You were on the V Corps

but you also

commanded

the 2nd Battalion, 8th Infantry

Regiment. We're interested


training,

war

did

in your impressions about the soldiers, the equipment, the state of and how you found this Army compared to the one you had left in 1945. What kind of you believe that we should be preparing for, and how did you go about doing that.

GEN DEPUY: When


head

left

the

Armed Forces

Staff College,
at

went

to Europe

and was assigned as

of the counterintelligence

branch of G-2,

US Army,

Europe (USAREUR) headquarters,


I

which was a legacy of my Hungarian and CIA experience. This horrified me so much went to the general and told him that didn't want the job. used even stronger language than that. Though he didn't like it very much, he let me out. It just so happened that in V Corps, the lieutenant colonel in the G-3 section who had been conducting the infantry battalion Army Training Tests (ATTs), had been relieved. So, they were looking for someone, and Colonel George Forsythe
I I

recommended me

to General LP. Swift, the

Corps commander. He was a


I

fine soldier.

He was

and he gave me the job. So, went up to V Corps, specifically picked by Swift to do that job, and for two years was the Assistant G-3 for Training. General, then captain, Bob Fair, by the way, was one of my assistants. For two years in a row tested all of the infantry battalions in the 1st and 4th Divisions, and in the 350th Infantry from Austria. did not test the armored infantry of the 2nd Armored Division. Well, let me tell you,
also an irascible but marvelous sort of a fellow,
I I I I

learned a

lot

doing that.
I

That was probably the best training ever got in the Army. It was very strenuous because each one of those tests lasted for a day and a half. We didn't get any sleep and then, after one day of rest, we would test another battalion. went through a little over 20 battalions each year. watched people do it right, and watched people do it wrong. saw a lot more do it wrong than saw do it right. was struck by the fact that those who had commanded battalions in war were something like five times as good and those who hadn't. blamed a little of that on Leavenworth, because the ones who hadn't commanded in war, more or less took a passive attitude, and waited for voluminous recommendations from their staff. With all of that going on, there was never time enough to move the troops, or to let them dig in, or to do all of the things that they had to do. They were always late, or lost, or mixed-up in one way or another. Now, the guys who previously had commanded battalions, more or less made up their own minds, and the staff ran around behind them and made it work. They gave the troops plenty of time to move and to dig in, which
I I I I I I
I

made

it

a lot better. So, after


in

two years

of testing battalions, there

about the infantry


things.

Europe, including the personalities as well

was very little didn't know as the good things and the bad
I

107

which was commanded by General Eddleman. They had a battalion of the 8th Infantry stationed all alone in Budingen, which asked to command and got it. When arrived there, it was just as if it was the day after World War II. Nothing had changed. The weapons were the same and the terrain was the same. So, just felt very much at home. As looked at the training of the battalion, which was as good as any of the battalions over there, found that at the squad level it was a shambles, just like my battalion had been in World War II. At the platoon level, it was a little bit better. The company commanders were better. They had good potential. So, decided to spend my time at the bottom. Now, that is when first applied the overwatch at least under that terminology. had an opportunity when was at corps to go over and watch 2nd Armored Division tank training under General Howze.* In my

From there then went


I

to the 4th Division

opinion, General

Howze was

the best trainer

in

the Army. Unfortunately, he wasn't appreciated

the

way he

should have been. Everything that he had written about


as precisely the
I

how

to train a tank platoon

squad since each of them have two operating sections or teams. So, wrote up several little booklets which we used as training manuals and doctrine in that battalion. trained all of the squads and platoons uniformly. personally tested them all. tested every squad three or four times. used to spend days and weeks out there with those squads. knew every squad leader well both his good points and bad points. They got very, very good. The other thing brought with me from World War was that insisted that when the battalion
struck
to train a
rifle
I I
I

me

way

II

was dug

you couldn't see it from the front. All of my colleagues had come from Korea, and they built big forts. When you got out in front, you could see everything. Well, one of the problems that had was that the umpires who came to test me thought was crazy. They didn't understand why hadn't built Korean pillboxes on the military crest or at the bottom of the hill.
in,
I

Instead,

had

my guys behind

rocks, trees

and bushes.
took
of the
is

wouldn't

let

them

disturb the bushes, but

made them
Well, to
first

dig in behind them, so

you couldn't see a thing from the

front.

make

a long story short,

when
all

my

first

annual training test at Wildflecken, the


platoon umpires ran back to the

thing

we

did

was
and

the defense, and

company and
that,

battalion umpire

said, "This battalion

totally unsatisfactory.

They don't know how

to dig

in." So, the battalion

umpire came and told

me

and

said,

"Okay, stop. Go and get the

commander, we're going to have a little talk." This was very ironic because the fellow testing me, Colonel Claude Baker, was the man who had previously commanded my battalion. had taken over from him, and now he was testing me. But, he was a hell of a good man. He had been in the 5th Regimental Combat Team in Korea and was a terrific fighter. We talked it over, and he agreed one hundred percent with what we were doing. He got all his umpires together and instructed them. They also were skeptical about the overwatch, and bounding, and all of that. Anyhow, we took the test, and we got a low score. We got 80 on a scale of 100. Well, it turned out that when the year was over, 80 was the high score in the corps, but it was a hard way to get
regimental
I

started.

was commissioned in the Cavalry in 1930. During World War II he the Mediterranean Theater (1943-44), and Combat Command A, 1st Armored Division, in Italy (1944-45). Other assignments included command of the 82nd Airborne Division (1958-59), and the XVIII Corps (1961-63), and Eighth Army, Korea (1963-65). He also served as Commander in Chief, United Nations Command, US Forces, Korea, and Eighth Army, Korea (1963-65).
*General Hamilton H. Howze,
the 13th

USA

Retired,
in

commanded

Armored Regiment

108

The point of all this is, that if your squads are well-trained, and you know that they are doing one of three things, then you can visualize how much space they take. And, if the platoons are trained the same way, everything is uniform. Now, there is plenty of room for initiative on the part of the leaders to adapt this to the terrain and to the enemy, but at least you know what it is that they are working with. And, the battalion ran just like a clock. The problem was that it was about a decade or two ahead of its time. That sounds a little egotistical, but that's exactly right, because if you went out and looked at a rifle squad or a platoon today, you would see exactly that. If you looked at the defensive positions, you would see what you knew in Vietnam as the DePuy foxhole, where they all had frontal cover and were all camouflaged. So, that's what happened to the 2nd
Battalion, 8th Infantry.*

INTERVIEWER:
similar in

In

the 2nd Battalion, 8th Infantry, you


in

younger than the soldiers you had commanded

commanded soldiers a generation Although they apparently were World War


II.

many

respects, please

compare the

quality of the soldiers in the mid-1950s with those of

the mid- 1940s.

GEN DEPUY:

Well, of course,
at the time,
I

it

may have been


quality,
if

a generation or a half generation later, but they


I

were the same age


difference

so they had the same characteristics.


anything,

thought the quality was


But, this time

pretty good. In fact,

thought the

was

better.
in

There was, however, one big

we
I

had

a lot of blacks.

We didn't
fine.

have any blacks

World War

II.

had blacks, and

thought they were


in

However, we were beginning to have some

racial

problems even then,


1950s,

that they divided up the gasthauses. All the blacks


in

the whites went to others, and once

awhile they would fight over a

went to one, while all gasthaus. Now, in the early

when
in

was

in

the 8th Infantry, the Korean

War was

just over. So, there


lot

was

wartime

mentality

the Army.

wartime mentality means that you get a


had some education programs. But,

of soldiers furnished to

you
its

who do what
training,

they are told. So, back then, there wasn't the concern that the

Army shows
all

for

people today, although

we

we

spent almost

of our time

and most of that

training

was done

in

the
I

field; yet,

the soldiers accepted that.


it.
I

We didn't

did.

me if thought the soldiers liked any more than wartime soldiers liked it. However, the soldiers responded to pride of unit. They knew they were better trained than the other battalions and took great satisfaction in that. By the way, my company commanders were superb. Only one was a
have any particular problem. You asked
I

don't suppose they

don't think they liked

it

The others were products of Korea enlisted men promoted to officer. One, Joe Hackett, was the best I've ever had tough, demanding, autocratic, but incredibly effective.
Regular.

INTERVIEWER: What was the

mission of the 8th Infantry?

GEN DEPUY:
Division,

The 4th

Division had responsibility for the sector

now

held by the 3rd

Armored

days

we were

and part of the 8th Mechanized sector around Fulda and over to Bad Hersfeld. In those very thin on the ground. There was no German Army. You ran up to get into

*For a discussion of the DePuy foxhole or "1st Division Bunker," see

"Combat Notes: Bunker

Building," Infantry 59

(September-October 1969), 46-50.

109

HL..,i,'^K&,

The DePuy foxhole was


purposes)

also called (for test

PARFOX or parapet foxhole. The


a large rock,

hole

was either dug behind


tree so that
If
it

mound

or

afforded frontal protection. available, the soldiers placed the spoil in front of the hole in the form of a berm high enough to cover the heads of the occupants from frontal observation or suppression. The soldiers fired at 45 angles from behind this camouflaged frontal cover. If time allowed, camouflaged overhead

no natural feature was

,m

e m

cover was added. Interlocking fields of fire covered all the killing zones and the position could not be suppressed by direct fire. One such position at Loc Ninh prepared by the 1st Battalion, 18th Infantry in 1967, caused an

exchange
198 to
1.

ratio of

enemy to

friendly killed of

position depending

upon how much warning you had, and then, you delayed back toward the
That's
all!

Rhine.
battle,

We had about one platoon for each paved road.

So,

it

was going

to be a platoon

and each platoon had a recoilless rifle. Maybe a platoon would have a section of tanks but normally not. They had their 106mm recoilless rifles on jeeps; they had a machine gun or two, and a 3.5-inch Bazooka or two. They scattered a few mines out across the road, and there would be a mile or two between platoons. That's one of the reasons why concentrated on squad and platoon training, because it was going to be a squad and platoon war.
I

INTERVIEWER: Was your battalion

foot mobile or motorized?

GEN DEPUY: We were a foot mobile division,


that

but there were enough truck companies around so

when

necessary,

we could mount up on trucks.


command
of the battalion

INTERVIEWER:
Corps for awhile.

After your

you became Deputy Chief of Staff

at

GEN DEPUY:
colonel,

Yes.

was promoted out


have a job
for

of the battalion. That's


in

and they

didn't

me

the division,

was promoted to so went back and became the Deputy


I

why

left.

110

106mm

Recoilless Rifle (top photo)

and 3.5-inch "Bazooka"

in

action (bottom photo).

mm
f ff
*".:.
'

jiff'

Si* Efi*M
'

'"

"

'

:".

..

ff/'VM
ff

iM
'.
'

..'

-/

:.iff iffff:;

illii
'iff'

Ml
W,
Chief of Staff at
did

Corps. That

was

a holding job

was

act as the deputy director for a


in

and during that time, the most interesting thing couple of big Seventh Army exercises. then came back to
I I

the United States to work

the Chief of Staff's office.

you prepared to return to the United States, you had been on active duty about 15 years or so, and were at mid-career. From a personal point of view, did you see yourself as a man with a future in the Army? In terms of comparison with your contemporaries, how did you size up the situation?
Sir,

INTERVIEWER:

at this particular point in time, as

GEN DEPUY:
of the pack.

Well,
I

was

right with

my contemporaries,

but

my contemporaries were well ahead

When

say contemporaries, I'm talking about Chuck Wilson, George Forsythe, Art

111

Collins, and people like that. All of us had been lucky enough to command battalions when we were very young and retain our lieutenant colonel's rank. We were on the forward slope of the "hump" and were all moving along together. We recognized that we were in a fairly advantageous position because we were being promoted to colonel at a reasonably young age, although we had all been lieutenant colonels for about nine years. But, about then, promotions began to move again. So, in those days, my attitude was that was right on par, but on par with a group that was
I

strategically well-placed in the race,

age wise.

INTERVIEWER: Upon your


Chief of Staff
in

return from Europe in 1956, you

were assigned

to the Office of the

What went on while you were there? What things were you working on, and what things were you thinking about?
the Pentagon.
there for almost four years.

You were

The reason went to the Chief of Staff's office was because of General Forsythe. George Forsythe was working there, and he needed to find somebody to take his job so he could go down and take command of a battle group in the newly activated 101st Airborne Division. So, he arranged for my immediate transfer to take care of his little problem. When arrived there, found a rather amazing situation. You may not recall, but the Chief of Staff of the Army was Max Taylor, Eisenhower was the President, and massive retaliation was the strategy. The Air Force was riding high. The Army was feeling sorry for itself. Because Ike thought that he knew all about the Army, it was getting short shrift. The Chairman of the Joint Chiefs was Admiral Radford. Admiral Radford, think, despised the Army even more than most admirals. General Westmoreland was the Secretary of the General Staff and the coordination group was the Army's response to the inter-service war. It was formed under Brigadier General Lyle Metheny, a marvelously leathery, former cavalry sergeant. He was both brilliant and combative. He surrounded himself with some bright young colonels, at least that was his idea Mel Coburn, Don Yuell, George Forsythe, a fellow named Pickell, Lieutenant Colonel Grant, and later, Ham Twitchell and others. Their job, without it ever being put into a charter, was to assist the Army in surviving the regime of Eisenhower and Radford, and the era of massive retaliation.*
I I I I

GEN DEPUY:

became very active in trying to influence members of Congress and members of the press. They became a little overactive and went a little bit too far at one point, and some of the papers they had written were exposed to full daylight. So,, they were, to put it kindly, dispersed. Colonel Forsythe went to the 101st, which he wanted to do anyway, but the timing was fortuitous. Yuell went up to the War College, and the others went elsewhere. Anyway, there was some slight embarrassment, and arrived just at that time.. The question then was what would we do? For awhile we wrote learned papers. General Taylor was the leading advocate of the concept of flexible response. He also came up with the Pentomic Division. This was his response to the fact the Army seemed to have been left out of the atomic age and needed to sound and appear very modern. Pentomic was thought to be one way to do that. Actually, think the Pentomic idea has more merit to it than it was ever given credit for having. So, we worked the inter-service beat. Oh, we did all sorts of things. We started the Army
This
little

office

Association at that time.

was, for about three years, the Chief of Staff's

man

for the

Army &

*For an overview of this particular period, see Maxwell D. Taylor, The Uncertain Trumpet (New York: Harper
Brothers, Publishers, 1960).

112

Association.

We

helped organize and put on the


I

first

annual meeting and the

When

say "we,"

really

mean more than anyone

else,

symposiums. Bob Cocklin. He was then, as now, the


initial

primary power behind the Association of the United States


General Gavin

Army (AUSA).

It

was

pretty small.

We

was very instrumental in getting it started, along with Cocklin, Forsythe and others. wrote some speeches. contributed to one of the chapters in General Taylor's book, The
I

Uncertain Trumpet, which had to do with the tactical

air

forces.

We regarded

it

as regrettable that

they had been

split

from the Army. You can

still

make

good argument

for that today, but they

are split and that's that.


this

We

generally

watched over the


responsible for

interservice battles that

went on. Now,

was

rather an
if

awkward

thing to do, because General Eddleman, for example,

was

the
said

DCSOPS, and

you asked him


it

who was

all

of these matters, he
It

would have

was one of those little groups that is often resented, sometimes does some good, sometimes doesn't do much at all, but often does some things that need to be done which the large formal staffs either don't want to do, can't do, or don't do. That was a rather strange career interlude. By the way, the officer who sat right next to me for two of those four years was Bernie Rogers. He then went over and became General
that he was. So,
a comfortable place to be.

was not always

Taylor's executive officer. So,

guess that explains the coordination group.*

m
.

mm f*
II;

'"''*'::;
= :

Ty
*

*--,
General Bernard W. Rogers

-r

<Hi.m
.
.

General

Maxwell D. Taylor

Lieutenant General George I. Forsythe

Taylor, USA Retired, was commissioned in 1922, in the Corps of Engineers. Transferring to the General Taylor commanded the 82nd Airborne Division Artillery (1943-44), in the European Theater during World War II. Other assignments included command of Eighth Army, Korea (1953-54), and Army Forces, Far East (1954-55). General Taylor also served as Chief of Staff of the Army (1955-59). Retiring in 1959, General Taylor was recalled to active duty to serve as Chairman of the Joint Chiefs of Staff (1962-64). Retiring again in 1964, General Taylor served as Ambassador to South Vietnam (1965), and as Special Consultant to the President (1965-69). general Bernard W. Rogers, USA, was commissioned in the Infantry in 1943. General Rogers has commanded the 5th Infantry Division (1969-70), and Forces Command (1974-76). General Rogers also has served as the Chief of Staff of the Army (1976-79). Since 1979, General Rogers has been the Supreme Allied Commander, Europe.
* General

Maxwell D.

Field Artillery,

113

INTERVIEWER: Could you

say a few more words about the Pentomic Division?

We noted in one
was
the fact that

of your letters that you took exception to the Pentomic Division.

GEN DEPUY:

Well, of course, one of the great flaws of the Pentomic Division

there weren't any jobs for infantry lieutenant colonels.

The armored

division stayed aloof

from

it

throughout, as did the armored infantry. So,


directly with captains.

in

an infantry battle group you had a colonel dealing

You had

a lieutenant colonel as the deputy

commander, and you had

majors as the principal staff officers, S-1, S-2, S-3, and S-4. So, there wasn't any career

What happened to this captain after he relinquished command of his company while become a colonel? You can't train an Army that way. You need a lieutenant colonel level command for sure, in order to keep them current and give them command experience. So, that was bad. Also, the companies were too large and unwieldy. However, other than that, had fun with it because commanding a battle group was really like commanding my third battalion. It was just a great big battalion. And, having commanded two battalions previously, really like to think that handled the battle group very well. The span of control wasn't too much. have to say that some battle group commanders who had not had a lot of experience with battalions found it
progression.

waiting to

cumbersome.

But, they tried to

do

it

through the

staff like a brigade or

regiment rather than

command

it

directly like

a battalion.*

XX
HQ

HQ

T
I

-1

,11, ,11.

DIV

HQ

m
.Li.
105-mm How
1 1 1

XX

^T
1
JJL
Comp
1

m
_LL

1
_LL

Tn HQ & HQ Det and Band

tt

3&

oo

Admin

Pentomic Infantry Division

See

Field

Manual 7-100, Infantry Division (Washington: USGPO,

1958), 6, 8.

114

INTERVIEWER: With
training

regard to the 1st Battle Group, 30th Infantry, please

program based on your assessment of what you needed to do,


about the
results.

comment on your what you did, and how

you

felt

GEN DEPUY:
Infantry, actually,
it
I

Well, you

may remember
In fact,

that while

commanded

the 1st Battle Group, 30th

was mechanized.
guess
I

the 30th

could divide the training


I

was the first mechanized battle group in Europe. So, that we did there into two periods and two different
I

The first period was when again trained all of the rifle platoons in the three types of overwatch and the platoon techniques, dismounted. Incidentally, had some marvelous young fellows there. George Joulwan and Jim Madden were both there, as was Charlie Getz and a number of other chaps who have done rather well. So, anyway, started out again training from the bottom up, and did all sorts of testing of squads, platoons, and companies. Then we were mechanized and were able to operate like armored forces, which liked. But, you have to train very carefully to do that. You've got to have companies that can be underway in five minutes max! mean, the whole company must be moving in the direction that you want it to move, and doing what you want it to do as a result of battle drill type command and control. To this day, most units in our Army can't do that. Generally speaking, the tank battalions do better than the mech battalions. If you have, as did in the 30th Infantry, five maneuver elements and often more than that, with one or two tank companies or sometimes a cavalry troop attached, it is necessary to go to checkpoint-type command and control and mission-type orders. We trained very hard to be able to do that, to be able to call up "Charlie Six" and say, "Move to Checkpoint 55." That's all would have to tell him! Within a matter of a minute or two, I'd get an "on the way," whether he had tanks with him or not. And, he knew what to do when he got to Checkpoint 55. That was part of our Standard Operating Procedures (SOP). You go there, you occupy a battle position, you look around and see what's going on, you contact any friendlies in the area, you sight your company in the direction that you think the enemy is coming from, and you prepare to move again. Now, if wanted him to do more than that, could tell him to go to
subjects.
I I I I I I I

Checkpoint 55 and put


time." Or,
I

in

a strong point,

could

tell

him,

"Go

to Checkpoint 55

which meant, "Dig in; you are going to be there a long and be prepared to move on order to Checkpoint

56." But, very

few things had


still

to be told to these people. So, the alacrity of the organization


drill.

was

very high while


In fact,

maintaining squad and platoon battle


it

because you know exactly what they look like on the ground how much space they take and how much time. think it was about a month after we were mechanized, that took the battle group into the field in January, when the ground was frozen,
that

makes

easier

and

just stayed in the field

from then

until early April, training tactically.

We could

go anywhere.
ever

We went down and


fact,

played

games with the 2nd

Cavalry, the 4th Infantry, and the 15th Infantry. In

we went

right

through that training into our

coming back. Now, the wives didn't like that, but kind you would do if you knew you were going to go to war. The troops were dirty. mean, their clothing was torn and dirty. Also, their vehicles were dirty, but they had learned how to maintain themselves in the field. They were not eating candy bars anymore. They were eating Army food. The replacement system, the maintenance system, the supply system, and the tactical system, were all working in the field.
of training that
I

Army Training Test at Hohenfels, without it was absolutely super training. It was the

115

It

was very

interesting
it,

when we went
all

into the training test.

Andy Goodpaster gave

it

to us.*

When we went into me and to Andy that

the umpires

looked at the battle group and then reported immediately to


it;

they were disappointed because the soldiers didn't appear to be "up" for
test.

they didn't seem to be "high" for this training


just steadily gained

Well, they weren't.


It

another day. Eventually, the soldiers became enthusiastic.

was

a three or five
hit

enthusiasm from the competition, and they

mean, this was just day test, and they the high point at the end
I

instead of at the beginning. But, our vehicles were running 90 to 95 percent operational
time.

all

of the

We had absolutely no trouble of any kind. We were ready for war.


the reasons that the battle group experience the

One of was also


battalion,
I

was

interesting

was

that in the beginning

commander

of a task force.

had the 30th Infantry, the 38th Infantry, a tank

and a cavalry squadron. That got to be so interesting that Goodpaster came up and took over. had responsibility for the Meiningen Gap. When we weren't out training the individual elements, we'd take the whole task force out and train up there by Munnerstadt, Neustadt and Konigshofen. So, would say that the 30th was the practical culmination of my experience as an infantry unit commander. felt like was able to put it all together, make it work, and really move it around tactically.
I I I

General

Andrew J. Goodpaster

Colonel DePuy, Commander, 1st Battle Group, 30th Infantry, shown briefing the Commandant of the German Infantry School in 1961

Andrew J. Goodpaster, USA Retired, was commissioned in the Corps of Engineers in 1939. During World General Goodpaster commanded the 48th Engineer Construction Battalion in Italy (1943-44). Other assignments included command of the 8th Infantry Division (1961-62), service as the Director, Joint Staff (1966-67), and a tour as the Commandant, National War College (1967-68). General Goodpaster also served as Commander in Chief, Europe and Supreme Allied Commander, Europe (1969-74). Retiring in 1974, General Goodpaster was recalled
* General
II,

War

to active duty in 1977

and served as the Superintendent, United States

Military

Academy (1977-81).

116

INTERVIEWER:
then.

It

appears that you

felt

very good about the quality of the soldier that you had

Would you compare them


I

with the World

War

II

variety?

GEN DEPUY: am
ever had.
I

led to believe that that


I

was

the time

when

the

Army had

the best people

it

has

say that because


in

read a book recently that said the Selective Service System rejected

about 35 percent, and

1960 and 1961, the

Army

rejected 78 percent at the

Armed Forces

Examination and Entrance Station (AFEES). This means that the


top 20 percent of the physical and mental specimens
super. Of course, they
in

Army was

getting roughly the

the country.

In short,

the troops were

were not volunteers.

INTERVIEWER:

Before taking

command
tell

of the 30th Infantry

you were

a student at the British

Imperial Defense College. Please

us about your experiences there?


a very pleasant interlude for

GEN DEPUY:
enjoy the

I'll

just say that

it

was

me and

British.

The course
like

lasted for a year

concerned about things


relaxing year of

the

and was a very high level Commonwealth and the world, and we
I

happen to type of thing. We were


the family.
I

travelled
friends.
It

around

a lot,

including a trip to the Middle East. Also,

met

a lot of people

who

are

still

was

the most

my life;
In

it

was

a very nice sabbatical.

INTERVIEWER:

the spring of 1962 you

the Deputy Chief of Staff for

became the Director of Special Warfare in the Office of Operations and Plans (DCSOPS), in the Pentagon. What happened

during the time you were there?

GEN DEPUY:
Bill

That was an interesting period.


the Assistant

Rosson,

who had been

came back there under the auspices of General Division Commander of the 8th Division, and had been
I

the director of an exercise

in Germany, which is what brought the two of us into close contact.* He was appointed the Special Assistant to the Chief of Staff for Counterinsurgency. Then, within a month after his return from Europe, he sent for me and came back to take the job as Director of Special Warfare. Needless to say, didn't know anything about it. We had some interesting people in there. My deputy was George Blanchard; Bill Bond, who was killed in Vietnam, was there also. But, counterinsurgency was all the rage in Washington because the Kennedys had come into office pledged to "help any friend." The Vietnam War was still at a relatively low level at this time. The Army was trying to find, as were the other services, a role in this new and exciting
I

high-priority national endeavor.


In

had just one year of


it.

that.

retrospect,
I

have a couple of feelings about


I

We were

rather mechanistic about the

whole
but
I

thing.

guess I'm using the same words that

used to describe the training for World


dissimilar.

War

II,

think

in

some

respects, the situations

were not

None

of us

were

guerrilla warfare,

unconventional warfare, psychological operations,

were experts. The subjects political action, and

*General William B. Rosson, USA Retired, was commissioned in the Infantry through ROTC at the University of Oregon in 1940. During World War II, General Rosson commanded the 3rd Battalion, 7th Infantry, in the European Theater. Other assignments included command of the 30th Infantry Regiment (1946-47), the 39th Infantry Regiment (1955-56), and Field Force, Vietnam (1967-68). General Rosson also served as Commander in Chief, US Army Pacific (1970-72), and as Commander in Chief, US Southern Command, Panama (1972-75).
I

117

General William B. Rosson


civic action.

General

George S. Blanchard
fall

think those are the functions that

under the general rubric of Special Warfare.

were trying to organize Special Forces units around the world a group in Okinawa, a group in Panama, a group in Europe, plus another reserve group or two at Fort Bragg and combine them with other experts in civil affairs, and be ready to do whatever the President said this country was going to do anywhere in the world. The whole thing, of course, eventually was sucked into the maw of Vietnam, but it was an activist philosophy. It was premised on the assumption that if we were smart enough at all those things then we could somehow thwart the efforts of the communists to subvert the Third World through wars of liberation. We thought we could bring up some disadvantaged country in the image of America. Well, now, after all these years, we know better. We have a much more modest view of our capabilities. So, look back on

We

all

of that as a period of fumbling


it,

national fumbling.

lot

of rather important people

in

the

Administration were behind

including General Taylor.

He

left

the Pentagon and

became an

advisor to the President and then

came back

as the Chairman of the Joint Chiefs of Staff because

man, and counterinsurgency was regarded as a component of flexible response. There was a great deal of confidence in Washington, naive confidence, that we could do anything we set our minds to. What we discovered in Vietnam and
he was, indeed,
first

of

all,

a flexible response

are discovering again


to the

in

Central America

is

that the political dimension of an insurgency

is

central

outcome. On the political side we are really amateurs. Our belief in political freedom that is, one-man-one-vote ties our hands in the rough and tumble politics of dictators and communists. The reason left Special Warfare was that was promoted. want to add one thing that just thought of. In 1962, went over to Vietnam with Colonel George Morton to establish the Special Forces headquarters at Nha Trang. The Central Intelligence Agency had taken over a number of Special Forces "A" Detachments and had inaugurated a program up at Ban Me Thuot, with the Rhade tribe of Montagnards. It had worked rather well and the history of Vietnam is that anything that worked well with ten good men, we tried to expand to 10,000 men right away. We thought Special Forces had a role to use its own troops, but we didn't want them to play it under the
I I I I I

Agency. The Army wanted


Special Forces
fact, the

to play

Command

in

own game. So, that was the beginning of Vietnam, a command which grew to at least 10,000
its

setting
at
its

up the
In

peak.

whole operation had the moniker

of "Operation Switchback,"

which meant the switch of

118

Special Forces and Vietnamese soldiers during


a

combat

patrol into
territory.

Vietcong infested

the Special Forces from the Central Intelligence


footnote.

Agency back

in

the Army. That's just another

INTERVIEWER:
Director of

Following your tour as Director of Special Warfare you spent a year as the

Plans and

Programs,

in

the Office of the Assistant Chief of Staff for

Force

Development (ACSFOR).

GEN DEPUY:
was most
job,

Well,

let

me

say that that experience was a very important one to me, and

really

beneficial in

terms of preparing

me to

later

take over the Assistant Vice Chief of Staff's

which was also primarily a programming job. The job in ACSFOR was an interesting one. You know, George Blanchard, Fritz Kroesen, and Donn Starry had that same job.* To this day all of us speak the same language and have the same strong feelings about the necessity for what we then called a Force Development Plan. Donn Starry calls it the Battlefield Development Plan, which is simply the Force Development Plan transplanted down to the Training and Doctrine Command (TRADOC), because they are no longer doing it up in the Pentagon. Fritz Kroesen understands all of that. Paul Phillips happened to be another one of the people who held the job. So, it's a special little club that we have. Basically, we were trying to do force planning at the departmental level so that weapons development, organization, training, tactics, and resources were all synchronized. It was a big step to take and it was only partially successful. After ten years of existence General Abrams eliminated ACSFOR and the force development function went to DCSOPS where it has
* Genera/ Frederick J. Kroesen, Jr., USA Retired, enlisted in the Army Reserve in 1942, and was called to active duty the following year. General Kroesen was commissioned in 1944, following completion of the Infantry Officer

Candidate School, at Fort Benning, Georgia. During World War II, General Kroesen served with the 254th Infantry Regiment in the European Theater. Other assignments included commanding the 1st Battalion, 187th Airborne Regimental Combat Team, Korea (1953), the 2nd Battalion, 187th Airborne Regimental Combat Team, Japan (195355), the 196th Light Infantry Brigade, Vietnam (1968-69), the 23rd Infantry Division, Vietnam (1971), VII Corps (197576), and Forces Command (1976-78). General Kroesen also served as the Commander in Chief, US Army, Europe and Seventh Army (1979-83).

119

ASSISTANT CHIEF OF STAFF FOR FORCE DEVELOPMENT (ACSFOR)

SPECIAL ASSISTANT

FOR TACTICAL MOBILITY

ARMY
AVIATION

CBR & NUCLEAR OPERATIONS

DOCTRINE,

ORGANIZATION & TRAINING

MATERIEL REQUIREMENTS

PLANS & PROGRAMS

ACSFOR
not prospered. So,

Organizational Chart as of July 1963.

TRADOC

has taken over half of the function and the other half of
Staff's

it

is

done by

DCSOPS

and the Director of the Army


think
it's

Program and Analysis

Office.

INTERVIEWER: Do you
something
like

now

appropriately placed at

TRADOC,

or should there

still

be

that

in

the Department of the

Army?

because TRADOC is one of several subordinate commands, and the Force Development Plan should have a great deal of executive power. Frankly, it also had difficulty in ACSFOR for the same reason. You had force
Well,
I

GEN DEPUY:

think that

it's

very

difficult for

TRADOC to do

it

development planning
planning up
in

in

ACSFOR,

operational planning

in

DCSOPS, and

then you had program

the Office of the Vice Chief of Staff. The higher you go, the more power you have.

Programming at the Chief of Staff's level, feeds the budget directly, whereas the Force Development Plan was a supporting document that didn't feed the budget quite as directly, but was used by the staff in formulating their portions of the program. As said, it was difficult to accomplish in ACSFOR. It will be even more difficult to do down in TRADOC, and think it is still an open question about whether or not a reincarnation of it is needed up at the Department of the Army level. The symptoms of the problem are visible in the Army's efforts to cope with the "tank program" and the "force modernization" problem.
I I

120

CHAPTER
Early

VI

Days of the Second Indochina War

INTERVIEWER: At

this point in

your career you again were assigned

to

an active theater,

this

time as the Military Assistance

Command, Vietnam (MACV)


were working on, and the

J-3. Please give us a brief description


activities that

of your duties, the projects, you

were going on

at that

time.*

GEN DEPUY: When


had already arrived.
Militarily

arrived General Harkins

was

still in

command
It

but General Westmoreland


to take Harkin's job.**

He was

the deputy and

was

obviously being
of Staff.

groomed

General Stilwell the former J-3,


it

became the Chief


in

was
I

a deceptively quiet

atmosphere.

were still very much concerned about the overthrow of the Diem regime and were trying to pick up the pieces. might add that political turmoil continued with a series of almost comic opera coups. Then in the fall of 1964, the Vietcong launched a coordinated effort to topple the Government of Vietnam (GVN) through a series of large battles which we can talk about later. General Westmoreland then assumed command. MACV changed from a staff that originally was very much concerned with advisory duties and the support of the ARVN in terms of training, to a staff that was increasingly concerned with operations. There was still a Military Assistance Advisory Group (MAAG), when arrived, but it then was absorbed within MACV. We soon had about 13 companies of helicopters deployed throughout the country, and we had an Air Force Advisory Detachment with the Vietnamese Air Force (VNAF), some Navy elements, and the Special Forces. Incidentally, the first Ops Center at MACV consisted of one officer and one sergeant who were located in a large closet. It contained a single sideband radio used for communications with the Military Police in Saigon, and some commercial telephones for communications with the corps. That was it. That was the Ops Center. We ran the US effort through the senior corps advisors. They were the subordinate echelons. And, they had operational control of the helicopters unless we took them away. What operational influence we had was generally based upon deciding which battles were the most important, allocating our intra-theater airlift accordingly for moving Vietnamese troops, and

was not terribly

active

the spring of 1964,

when

arrived. People

*For background on the US Army's early involvement in Vietnam see Ronald H. Spector, United States Army in Vietnam: Advice and Support: The Early Years, 1941-1960 (Washington: USGPO, 1983). See also, William E. DePuy, "Vietnam: What We Might Have Done and Why We Didn't Do It," Army 36 (February 1986), 22-25, 28-40.
** General Paul D. Harkins was commissioned in the Cavalry in 1929. During World War II, General Harkins served as the Deputy Chief of Staff, Seventh Army (1943-44) and Third Army (1944-45), in the European Theater. General Harkins also commanded the Military Assistance Command, Vietnam (1962-64). General William C. Westmoreland,

USA Retired, was commissioned in the Field Artillery in 1936. During World War II, General Westmoreland served in the European Theater with the 9th Infantry Division. Other assignments included command of the 187th Regimental Combat Team, in Korea (1952-53), the 101st Airborne Division (1958-60), the XVIII Airborne Corps (1963-64), and the Military Assistance Command, Vietnam (1964-68). General Westmoreland also served as Chief of Staff of the Army
(1968-72).

121

%i?

General Paul D. Harkins

General William C. Westmoreland

: '

^H^S:^;B ':"iL;"i;
:

'.
..

US Army advisors working with

the South Vietnamese.

assembling helicopters companies wherever the battle was taking place. To indicate what a one-

we kept a Caribou (C-7) out at Tan Son Nhut loaded with hand pumps. These were needed to pump fuel out of 55-gallon drums into helicopters. There was a sergeant whose name think was Smith, who was CINCPUMP. The problem was always the time
horse operation

we were
I

running

If you could refuel rapidly near the battle site, you didn't need as many and vice versa. If decided to move some helicopter companies from the Delta up into the III Corps, we immediately dispatched Sergeant Smith with the hand pumps and we got the tactical airlift to begin flying in 55-gallon drums of fuel. My close friend and constant companion was Brigadier General Thang, the J-3 of the Vietnamese Joint Staff. He controlled ARVN to the extent that there was central control. The corps commanders were political-military feudal lords. it

took for refueling.

helicopters

characterized or at least painted a picture showing the Vietnamese wonder if you would comment on your on the verge of losing control. appraisal of the government, and on the effectiveness of its organization?

INTERVIEWER: You have


to be

government

122

government as such. There was a military junta that ran the country. Most of the senior Vietnamese officers, as you know, had served in the French Army. A lot of them had been sergeants. Politically, they were inept. The various efforts at pacification required a cohesive, efficient governmental structure which simply did not exist. Furthermore, corruption was rampant. There was coup after coup, and militarily, defeat after defeat. General Westmoreland indicated in a message that he sent after the battle of Binh Ba, up in Quang Ngai Province, that he gave the Vietnamese government six months to live at most, because they were losing a battalion a day, and a district town a week, something like that. The situation was very critical. That was the assessment in MACV at the time that recommendations and decisions were being made concerning the introduction of US Forces. To coordinate the entire US effort General Taylor, who was then the ambassador, formed a mission council consisting of himself as chairman, General Westmoreland, and the AID, CIA, and USIA heads. Many subcommittees were formed and much paper generated. The J-3 was drawn into this effort might in support of General Westmoreland. This was the beginning a belated beginning add in the integrated pacification effort which finally congealed under Mr. Komer and was placed entirely under MACV. In the beginning there were endless jurisdictional disputes.
Well, there wasn't a Vietnamese
I

GEN DEPUY:

INTERVIEWER: In terms of the ARVN, was there any single thing such as the way they did way they controlled their fires, or the intelligence they had, that you could point at and say, "This is where they need help. If we fix this, then the ARVN will be a lot better."
business, or the

SSSSnSra^*? -

Army of the

Republic of Vietnam (ARVN) elements conducting area sweeps.

seldom equalled the motivation of the VC and NVA. On the technical side, the ARVN was losing the war just the way the French had lost the war, and for many of the same military reasons. They didn't have the mobility to react rapidly to a Viet Cong attack, so the attacks, almost without exception, were successful and the attackers withdrew before any substantial reaction could take place. It was like the French on Route 19

GEN DEPUY:

The basic motivation

of the

ARVN

123

when
at
it

they were defeated at the

Mang Yang

Pass.

The French

soldiers fought well, but

if

you look

from an analytical point of view, from the moment the


progressively against the

first

shot

was

fired, the force ratios

moved

French because they could not be reinforced while their

casualties

mounted. The Viet Minh were already there in strength.* Now, the same thing was happening to the ARVN in the days just before our rather massive intervention. Even with a few helicopter companies, it wasn't enough to allow the ARVN to react quickly enough. Not only that,
but the

ARVN commanders

hadn't tasted success for a long time, so they had

become

They expected defeat. They conceded to the enemy superior tactics, superior indoctrination, and superior will power. And, they lost all of the battles they thought they were going to lose, just as most troops will under those conditions. Just to jump ahead and finish this sort of tactical train of thought in every operation fought over there by American forces, and certainly when you and were together in the 1st Division, from the time the first shot was fired in any battle, from that minute on, the combat power ratio turned in our favor. The situation was just the reverse from what had occurred before, because we brought in artillery, we brought in air, and then, we brought in more troops. Now, the ARVN eventually tasted success; it was able to move with our help, and began to achieve victories. There is nothing that helps an Army like victories. The ARVN got fairly confident, and it was winning battles. And then, we vietnamized. So, they again lost their ability to concentrate. The name of the game in a war like that is that the insurgents have the advantage of picking the time and the place to attack. They can decide to fight only when they are going to win. The only antidote for that is to be able to react faster and to put more on the battlefield than they can. By and large, the American Army did that, and, by and large, it won battles. So, when you strip away all of the politics and everything else, that is the
pessimistic.
I

tactical story of

Vietnam.

INTERVIEWER:

In

your

role

as the J-3,

imagine you had a

lot

of contact with the various

US

agencies that either were present or were coming into Vietnam during that period. Please describe

your perception of the

role

and the interface between these agencies during that period


said earlier, they had

of time.

what was called the Country Team, sometimes labeled the "Mission Council." General Westmoreland was a member; the local heads of the CIA, USIA, and the US Agency for International Development (USAID), were members; and then, there was a political officer representing the State Department. The ambassador was chairman of the group. It met once or twice a week while General Taylor was in Vietnam as the ambassador. It met formally at least once a week. They decided how to coordinate the activities of the various agencies represented. Everything considered, believe they did a pretty good job. To be frank, there was a certain amount of bickering. There was this feeling of which element was really the most important element. They would argue about how big the police force should get under the
Well, as
I I

GEN DEPUY:

auspices of AID, versus


all

how

big the regional forces should get under the auspices of

MACV.

But,

arguments were eventually resolved by reasonable men. The Country Team caused a lot of things to happen long before Komer came along with Civil Operations and Rural Development Support (CORDS). Everybody recognized that there were
of the
*For an account of the battle of Stackpole Co., 1967), 182-225.

Mang Yang

Pass, see Bernard B.

Fall,

Street Without

Joy

4th ed. (Harrisburg:

124

war going on simultaneously, ranging all the way from the very quiet, subversive war and use of terror down in the hamlets and villages, up to the use of main forces, with everything in between. The political actions of the Vietnamese government, the nature of the economy, prices, the building of roads there was nothing that happened in Vietnam that wasn't relevant to the total outcome. So, the agencies began to reinforce their efforts. Each agency brought in more people and more money, and initiated new activities. The US and the Vietnamese organizations were sort of parallel hierarchies, with the US trying to help at every level. Eventually, we were helping in all of the provinces and districts, at all of the corps and division headquarters, in every department and ministry of the government, at all of the ports and airfields, with the intelligence and police services, and with all of the social welfare services. You believe that by the time of TET, under Komer's "blowtorch" can go on, and on, and on. treatment, that effort was moving along quite well.
several levels of
political
I

INTERVIEWER:

This

was TET of what year,


in

sir?

GEN DEPUY: TET came


military battle

1968.

TET was

the watershed. Before TET,

would say

that the

wasn't won, the subversive battle wasn't won, and the economic battle wasn't
It

won;

was a stalemate. The enemy couldn't take over South Vietnam and we couldn't defeat the enemy who controlled his casualties by pacing his operations by controlling the tempo. Then TET came along and showed that in that kind of a war, the guerrillas, the enemy, can make a sudden effort and go anywhere, including in the
but, the other side wasn't winning either.

nation's capitol or
in

in

the American Embassy,


still

if

they are willing to pay the price. But, people back


lines,

and concluded that if the enemy could in Washington, even though we were TET the VC were decisively defeated and never recovered. After TET it was a North Vietnamese war. TET was a military disaster and a political triumph for the other side. The North Vietnamese lost the battle but they won the war as a result of TET, no question about it. It terrified and horrified the people in Washington. Eventually, however, historians will write about the Vietnam War and say, "The kind of things we were doing in Vietnam before TET were right for that kind of war. But, it would have taken a very long time." However, considering the attitude in the US, the effort was too expensive, lasted too long,
the United States

thought of war

in

terms of

get into Saigon, then

losing. So,

struck a deathblow

was too complex, involved too much television, resulted in too much gore, and required too much patience. In short, the American people decided that Vietnam wasn't worth it. The other way to have won the war was General LeMay's concept "Bomb North Vietnam back into the stone age." In retrospect, his solution was more American than the
became too
frustrating,

sophisticated counterinsurgency efforts which couldn't finish the job within the tolerances of the

American people and

their political leaders.

INTERVIEWER: Concerning the Vietnamese seemed to be some controversy over just how
was going to do, at comment on that?
least as far as the

National Police Field Force, at one point there

was going to be, or just what it Vietnamese were concerned. wonder if you would care to
extensive
its

role

125

GEN DEPUY:

Yes. That has an interesting origin. The British

in

Malaysia were prohibited by

The police force was, in fact, an army. Most people don't understand that. It was organized into companies and battalions, and was armed just like an army, and it fought just like an army. It had two branches, a special branch which was concerned with intelligence activities, and a combat branch which exploited the intelligence. Well, people who were only casual students of that whole thing, thought that the solution in Vietnam was to do just as the British had done in Malaysia. Well, there were several other factors to consider. One was that we didn't have to call the army a police force. Another consideration was that there was no American "El Supremo" the way there had been when Templar was in Malaysia. A third consideration, and perhaps the most important one, the communist terrorists were Chinese, not Malayans. That really helped in the identification of friend and foe, in the creation of patriotism, and with everything else. But, only mention this because repeatedly, the AID people would bring up experts from Malaysia, including Sir Robert Thompson, and an Australian who worked with the police, Ted Serong, both of whom recommended that we recreate the winning combination that they had had in Malaysia, which meant creating a very large combat police force.** Now, the mission of that combat police force would be indistinguishable from that of the regional forces. The only difference was going to be who commanded it. They wanted to
treaty from having an army.* So, the British

had to create a

large police force.

command

from Saigon, the way the police field force in Malaysia had been commanded from Kuala Lumpur, whereas we were trying to decentralize the political/police action down to the province and to the district levels. And so, the police field force was simply a jarring note in the great symphony that was going on in Saigon, and those of us in MACV fought it and contained it. We didn't see how we could tolerate it. You can always have a few independent folks floating
it

around, intelligence people

like

the CIA, but you cannot tolerate having

little

feudal armies running


that's the

around

in

a district or in a province while getting their orders

from Saigon. So,

background.

INTERVIEWER:
regional,

So, the national police force would have been


in

in

addition to

all

of the other local,

and regular forces

an area.

GEN DEPUY:

Yes, but the concept

was

very fuzzy.

INTERVIEWER: Another

interesting occurrence during this period of time


that,

was

the difficulty that

the Vietnamese had with the Montagnards. Would you comment on a long-standing problem, and what was finally worked out?

both

in

terms of

it

being

GEN DEPUY:
Vietnamese are

The Vietnamese word for the Montagnards is "Moi," which means savage. The a proud race, and are very conscious of their long cultural history, and successful

*For an overview of the Malayan insurgency, see Noel Barber, 1948-7960 (New York: Weybrightand Talley, 1972).

War of the Running Dogs: The Malayan Emergency:

**For an overview of Sir Robert Thompson's ideas on dealing with an insurgency, see Robert Thompson, Defeating Communist Insurgency: The Lessons of Malaya and Vietnam (New York: Frederick A. Praeger, Publishers, 1966).

126

military history.

And, they

really

regarded the Montagnards as aborigines, which,

in fact,

they are.

Now,
tribes,

the Americans, on the other hand, have always had a love affair with the Montagnards.

Scholars of various kinds found their

way up

into the

mountains and

lived

with and studied the

and became fascinated with these aborigines. They noted that the Montagnards were pure, simple, mountain folk, and not very guileful. So, we had to like them. Meanwhile, we were having a lot of trouble with the more sophisticated Vietnamese in the lowlands. So, the Americans, from the very beginning, were emotionally linked with the Montagnards against the Vietnamese. And, for that reason, the Vietnamese distrusted the Americans. Well, there were some rather sophisticated Montagnards, one of whom was Y Bham. Y Bham was the hereditary king of all the Montagnards. He was a Rhade who lived in Ban Me Thuot, and was serving as the assistant province chief of Darlac Province at the time of the Montagnard rebellion, the first Montagnard rebellion. He ran off into the forest and the Montagnards attacked a number of Special Forces camps. They left our chaps alone but they killed the Vietnamese Special Forces troops, and threw their bodies into the garbage pits, or otherwise treated them badly. This caused quite a problem for the Americans because the Vietnamese government naturally wished to take severe reprisals against the Montagnards. But, the Montagnards were the darlings of the State Department, and the CIA particularly, didn't want them massacred. Anyhow, had a personal involvement in this situation. was sent up to Ban Me Thuot by "Westy" to take charge of the situation there. The situation was that there were about five Special Forces camps around Ban Me Thuot that had been taken over by the Montagnards.* However, their attempt to take over Ban Me Thuot had failed. The countryside was filled partly with VC and partly with hostile Montagnards. Around the Special Forces camp of Buon Sar Pa, located south of Ban Me Thuot, the Montagnards had seized two district chiefs and a number of other officials and their families, and had them locked up. The government of Vietnam sent two of the Dalat generals up to Ban Me Thuot to take charge of the situation or to take the blame. You may recall that the Dalat generals had been incarcerated at the time that General Khanh took over. He was the little chubby general who smoked Salems all the time. Tran Van Don did not come up. Kim came up, as did the
I I

former

brilliant of them all, and nobody trusted him. Anyway, he came up as the foreign policy advisor. Tan Tat Dinh served as the military advisor. Now, General Lam, an inscrutable Chinese-looking chap, who later commanded Corps, was the 23rd Division commander, and was the MACV player. We had a lot of American advisors in Ban Me Thuot, working with the 23rd Division and assisting
III

Corps commander, Ton Tat Dinh. Although Kim was the most

was

fluent in French,

with the administration of the province.

and got

day and night, we got it all settled in all of the camps officials and Special Forces personnel back, except at Buon Sar Pa. At Buon Sar Pa there was a chap named Y Tlur, who later became a Kit Carson
Well, finally, after a
all

lot

of palavering both

of the remaining

Vietnamese

scout with the cavalry,


the 5th Special Forces

who was

the leader of the rebels. Colonel

John Speers, who commanded

in Nha Trang, flew in by helicopter to visit his Special Forces personnel, and Y Tlur had him arrested. Then, Colonel Fritz Freund who was the deputy corps advisor at Pleiku, flew in and they also arrested him, but only halfheartedly he kept his weapon. So,

there

we were,

with the

US

Special Forces Detachment, the

commander

of the 5th Special Forces

Army Special Forces:

*For an overview on the Special Forces working with the Montagnards and on the rebellion, see Francis J. Kelly, U.S. 1961-1971 (Washington: USGPO, 1973).

127

and a lot of other officials and their wives, all locked Khanh flew up and said that he was going to take the place by force and then was going to try the Montagnards for treason. exacted a promise from General Khanh and from Generals Kim, Dinh, and Lam, that they would give me one more day to try and
district chiefs,

Group, a senior advisor, two

up by the Montagnards. General

somehow

for the following

already had made all of the arrangements for a rescue operation morning and had obtained the necessary permission from Saigon. We were going to circle the camp with US A-1s, and have a Special Forces ad hoc battalion loaded in helicopters ready to go in and rescue everyone.
solve this situation.
I

At 11:00 o'clock that night one of the advisors called to say that the 23rd Division was on the move. If the division had attempted to seize the camp it would have resulted in a real massacre, probably of our people as well as everyone else. So, dashed over to General Lam's house at 2:00 o'clock in the morning, and confronted him with the fact that he had promised me as one soldier to another, not to do that. told him that he couldn't do it it was against the honor of a soldier. And, my God, he called it off. Well, the next morning at H Hour, 0900, it was foggy. Finally, at 1000 hours, the fog lifted. We had arranged that as soon as we circled the camp, Fritz Freund, who must say is a brave man, would get Y Tlur to line up all of the Montagnards on parade, a whole battalion of them. Freund, even though technically under arrest, was still carrying his Swedish K, and he thrust it into the hands of Y Tlur and said, "If you're going to kill me, kill me now with my own weapon in front of your troops." Very dramatic. He's a big ham. Since Y Tlur didn't say anything, Freund spun on his heels and went down and clipped the lock off of the prison compound and let all of the prisoners out. We had passed him a pair of clippers through a liaison officer that we had sent into the camp everyday. He then marched the prisoners to the gate while all of the troops still were standing in formation. We then landed some helicopters and the prisoners all got aboard the helicopters and took off.
I

The Montagnard troops and Y Tlur were so astonished that they just stood there, still in their formation, with their mouths hanging open. Then Fritz, not knowing when to let well enough went in. They couldn't alone, said to me, "Come on, give a speech to the troops." So, rousing speech and told them them couldn't understand them, but gave a understand me, and they had made all the right decisions, and so on and so forth. shook their hands, inspected them, congratulated them, and then, wheeled around and went down and got on the helicopter with Fritz and John Speers and flew away. About an hour later, the Vietnamese 23rd Division entered the camp. All was sweetness and light, and nobody got killed. So, anyway, that's the sort of comic opera "Perils of Pauline" stuff, that went on with the Montagnards. They had another incipient rebellion later on, but it was a lesser problem. Now, Y Bham never did come back. He stayed in Cambodia and started a thing called FULRO, which was the Unified Front for the never knew, whether it was Liberation of Oppressed People. We never knew, or at least
I I I I I I

communist-inspired, Cambodian-inspired, or genuine, but

think

it

finally

petered out.

INTERVIEWER: Thanks for sharing

that story with us.

GEN DEPUY:

That's more, probably, than you had

in

mind.

128

General DePuy preparing to encourage some 400 Montagnard "rebels" at the Buon Sar Pa Special Forces Camp to
release their South Vietnamese and American "prisoners" in September 1964.

INTERVIEWER: At
comment on

this particular

time the government of the United States

was making

the

decision that led to the introduction of significant


that decision, particularly
in

US ground

forces into the conflict. Please

terms of the timing, the quantity of forces involved, the


in

missions that the American units were assigned, and the organizations involved

terms of

whether or not

we

brought

in

the right kind of folks to do

what you thought needed

to be done.

GEN DEPUY:

This

is

as good a point as any to


I

Vietnam War. By structure interacted in each phase of the war. This will take a little time. The first phase of the war was a classic Asian insurgency patterned after the Chinese experience as explained by Mao and after the experience of the Viet Minh in their successful war against the French. It was classic in that it was both a military and political effort at every level. There were
guerrilla

you what believe to be the structure of the mean the organization and objectives of both sides and the way they
tell
I

squads

in

the hamlets, platoons

in

the villages, companies


129

in

the districts, and battalions

and military was controlled by Hanoi. From about 1957 until the end of 1964, the main effort was carried by South Vietnamese Communists. The command of South Vietnam was divided into two sectors. The southern half of the country was controlled by the National Liberation Front from a headquarters on the Tay Ninh/Cambodian boundary called COSVN. The effort in the northern half of the country was controlled directly by
in

the provinces. At each level decisions were


cell.

made by

committee involving

political

leaders controlled by the party

The

party, in turn,

Hanoi through

military regions.

By 1960 an echelon of military force above the province level appeared in War Zones C and D. These units were of regimental size and were employed by COSVN. We called them Main Force units. By 1964 the regiments in War Zones C and D combined to form the 9th VC Division. That is the unit, you will recall, that received the bulk of our attention in 1966 and 1967.
It

the
less

was against the insurgency that the US directed its GVN. We only vaguely understood the organization
about
its

operating practices. But,

it is

and of the Viet Cong in 1960, and knew even essential to an understanding of the war to understand
early efforts in support of the

ARVN

how this structure

operated.

The higher echelons supported the lower by attacking the popular or regional forces in the hamlets and villages in order to gain dominance over the region so that the guerrilla units could
operate freely and the
stockpiling food
political

apparatus could organize the people.

On

the other hand, the lower

echelons supported the higher by recruiting for them, by providing intelligence and guides, and by

and ammunition where it would be needed. The whole organization was mutually supporting, both politically and militarily. The best example of the early counterinsurgency effort was an operation launched by General Westmoreland in 1964 called HOP TAG. It was targeted against each echelon of the Viet Cong structure simultaneously. The overall objective was the security of Saigon and the surrounding
area.

Visualize a target on the rifle range. The bull's eye was Saigon proper. In this central area the Vietnamese police and intelligence agencies sought to uncover and eliminate the Viet Cong terrorists, guerrillas, and political cells. We called this function "securing". In the secure inner zone the government would conduct education, information, health, and economic programs to

secure the loyalty and ensure the prosperity of the inhabitants. The
in

GVN

wasn't very good at

this

the early days, as


In

have

said.

and the district companies and provincial battalions so that the secure area in the center could be expanded. We called this function "clearing". It was done by the ARVN, and as it progressed, security would be provided by locally recruited and organized popular and regional forces. Of course, one danger to all of this was the intervention of the Viet Cong Main Force regiments which from time to time, would move into the "clearing zone" and destroy ARVN battalions, Regional Force companies or Popular Force platoons. That, of course, would move the whole
the next ring of our target the object
to clear out the Viet
guerrillas

was

Cong

process back to square one.


Therefore,
in

the outer ring of our target,

we

provided for an effort by the

elite

effective elements of

ARVN

to operate aggressively against the


possible. This

Main Force

units,

and more keeping them

on the

run,

and destroying them whenever

was

the origin of the term, "Search and

Destroy".

It

was

a perfectly logical description of the function

search for and destroy the Viet

130

Cong Main Force

units. Unfortunately, television

coverage of a Marine putting


into a dirty

his cigarette lighter

to a thatched roof in a small hamlet turned

"Search and Destroy"

word.

was primarily a could be done. However, unbeknownst to us at the beginning, Now, so


long as the insurgency
Politburo,
in

South Vietnamese

Hanoi decided

in late

1963 or early
in

'64, to
fall

was about all that the high command, guess the reinforce the Main Force war. They also
affair, this
I

ordered the Viet Cong to take the offensive


In

the

of 1964. [See

Map

20,

page

132.]

VC Division, then consisting of two regiments, went Phuoc Tuy Province, and received from NVN trawlers a full array of new weapons AK-47s, RPG-2s, 80mm mortars, 12.5mm antiaircraft machine guns, claymore mines, and etcetera. In December, the 9th occupied the Catholic hamlet of Binh Gia in Phuoc Tuy Province. Then, in rapid succession, they destroyed four battalions including ARVN Rangers and Marines. This action sent shock waves through the GVN, MACV, and the US government. The Main Force offensive utterly destroyed the pacification effort in Phuoc Tuy. No HOP TAC could survive such an incursion. By May of 1965 the 9th VC Division had mounted equally successful attacks against the district town and Special Forces camp at Dong Xoai, and against the capital of Phuoc Long Province, Song Be. ARVN infantry and airborne battalions were wiped out in these
October and November of 1964, the 9th
to the coast of eastern

actions.
In

the north the 1st and 2nd


of Binh Ba,

VC

regiments conducted a similar operation against the

district

town

20 miles west of Quang Ngai. Again, several

ARVN

battalions including a

Ranger

were totally destroyed. It was in this environment that the first deployment of US combat forces occurred. General Westmoreland wanted some US troops to reverse the disintegration of ARVN. He gave them no more than six months unless the US intervened. The first batch of US troops were used as a fire brigade rushing to threatened areas and pursuing the VC Main Forces. That level of effort would have been about right except that as the US troops arrived so too, did the first NVN Army forces. Not only did NVN reinforce the VC Main
battalion,

Forces

for

example, the 101st

NVN

regiment joined the 9th

VC

division in late 1964

but

also, entire NVN divisions began to fight for border areas inside South Vietnam as early as 1965. The battle of the la Drang by the 1st Cavalry was just such a fight involving three NVN regiments. The Marines had a battle in 1965 just south of the DMZ with an entire NVN division. The battles of Khe Sanh and in the A Shau Valley, and those north and west of Kontum, were border wars. General Westmoreland found the game changing under his feet. Washington was almost always one phase behind in its understanding. The media had the same problem, and still has. So, to wrap up this discussion, believe there were five wars, not one. believe they changed over time and in geographic focus:
I I

War #1
War
#
in

1957-64:

An

insurgency of the classic Asian variety, focused on the Delta and on the

lowland coastal areas where the population

was

centered.

1965-71:

reinforced Main Force

war

still

related to the insurgent structure

and

focused

or near the populated areas.

War #3 1965-72: Concurrently with War #2, a border war between the NVN Army and the US Army in the Central Highlands and in the northern provinces, especially north of Da Nang. War #4 1965-72: Concurrent with Wars #2 and #3, a retaliatory and interdiction war against

NVN

by the Air Force and Naval

Air.

War #5

1972-75:

The

outright invasion of

SVN
131

by

NVN

after the

US had

withdrawn.

Map 20 - The Ho
132

Chi Minh Trail

Most Americans who served in Vietnam observed or participated in just one or two of these "wars." The press formed its basic opinions during "War #1" and largely ignored the rest. Bill, you and fought mostly in War #2 and perhaps at Loc Ninh and An Loc, in War #3. It is my absolute conviction that US forces fought extremely well in Wars #2, #3, and #4. With
I

respect to

War

#1,

have always

felt

that regular

US Army

troop units are peculiarly

ill

suited for

the purpose of "securing" operations where they must be

in

close contact with the people.

They

can, of course, conduct "clearing" operations, and are perfectly suited for "Search and Destroy".

The

and psychological end of the spectrum, the more inappropriate is the use of foreign troops who don't speak the language, and who may well have a negative effect on pacification efforts. Against this background and structure the argument about priorities as between the pacification effort and the big unit war or arguments about the uncounted enemy seem trivial to me.
closer
political
It

one moves toward the

background that the various decisions were made about troop engagement. By the time this government began to realize what it was up against for example, there were about 20 NVN Army Divisions in SVN at the end (more divisions than we had in the active US Army). It was too late. Once more we were one or two steps out of phase with reality.

was

also against this


rules of

deployment and

INTERVIEWER: What thought was given


GEIM

to the sanctuaries?

DEPUY: At one

time General Westmoreland had the

brilliant

idea of putting the 1st Cavalry

and operating across the narrow panhandle of Laos, from the west, and interdicting the Ho Chi Minh Trail. We even made some of the coordination necessary to do that. By that time Dick Stilwell was in Thailand. However, that concept wasn't approved. The State Department didn't like that idea. Then, Westy wanted to put them right into Laos astride the Ho Chi Minh Trail. Harry Kinnard, who still see from time to time, and were talking about that just the other day. He told me how he had been directed to plan for that contingency. The division would have gone in about where Lam Son eventually went in toward the end of the war. Too bad they didn't because that trail could have been physically cut. Hell, later it became a pipeline and a highway. It would have been one big battle and it would have required a lot more than one division, but it was the way to go. But, General Westmoreland was not permitted to do it. At that time we were captives of our own emphasis on counterinsurgency which blinded us to the escalating dimensions of the war. We fought continuously to get permission to put recon and targeting teams into Laos and Cambodia. It was like pulling teeth. Ambassador Sullivan in Laos fought us every step of the way. Finally, Nixon started bombing in Cambodia and finally invaded. That caused a firestorm in the US. Neither the public nor the media had the slightest conception of the scope or intensity of the war. We in the military failed miserably in portraying the war for what it was. Of course, there is some question as to whether or not that is a military responsibility.
Division into Thailand,
I I

INTERVIEWER:

Sir,

wonder

if

you would describe what "Apache Forces" were?

133

remember much about the details. The idea was to get Montagnards or Nungs who were willing to fight on our side, and put them with US units. Some of them were called Kit Carson Scouts, and some were called Apache Teams.
Well,
I

GEN DEPUY:

can't

INTERVIEWER: What was


by
this time,

the attitude of the Vietnamese government toward refugees which,


all

were being generated

over the country?

GEN DEPUY:

The American AID people and the American mission, the Country Team, were
lot

always very much concerned about refugees, and spent a

of time with the

Vietnamese

government worrying about them, taking care of them, putting up refugee camps, getting rice for them, and so on. wasn't involved directly in that so don't have any useful memories to recount.
I I

INTERVIEWER: What was

the

Navy doing

at this time?
in

the area throughout the war, but at this particular point

The 7th Fleet was certainly involved time what were they doing?
effort

in

GEN DEPUY:
the

In

the beginning, of course, the

Navy advisory

was

involved

in

organizing

the Vietnamese Navy into a coastal patrol designed to prevent

infiltration

along the coast. Later,

and augmented that effort with their own people. They really thickened it up and made it pretty good. The last big infiltration along the central coast occurred at Vung Ro, in 1965. Later, from time to time, they caught trawlers, and so on, down off the U Minh Forest. The rest of the Navy, the big Navy, of course, was on carriers bombing the North. The Navy also

US Navy came

in

provided the boats for the Riverine force

in

the Delta. This could be described as the extension of

the reinforced Main Force war into the Delta. Because of 9th Division operations the
sent troops to reinforce the Delta
in

NVN

also

1968.

INTERVIEWER: What
problems
in

constraints did you encounter

in

building

up

US

forces?

Were

there any

terms of the combat service support structure, or with places to put them, or with the
supply lines?

availability of

The real problems associated with the Vietnam buildup were basing and logistics. The deployment of forces was really determined by those two factors. For a year and a half we went to countless force planning and deployment conferences in Hawaii and in the United States, and drew up an infinite number of alternative force plans, together with the infrastructure plans that went behind them. US Army, Vietnam, under a lot of different people and during those critical times under Jack Norton, was marvelously resilient and never said no when we wanted to
bring
in

GEN DEPUY:

another

unit.

Lots of interesting problems

came

up.

One was when we deployed


It

the 1st

Cavalry Division.* [See

Map

21,

page 136]

There

we

ran into an unexpected problem with Admiral Sharp.

may be

true of

all

admirals,

don't know, but Admiral Sharp had a deep fear of the dangers associated with land warfare.

He

had a Dien Bien Phu syndrome. He didn't want to put the 1st Cavalry Division very far inland. We wanted to put the unit at Pleiku so that it could operate both north and south, and dominate the
*For a discussion on developing bases and on logistics, see Carroll H. Dunn, Base Development in South Vietnam: 1965-1970 (Washington: USGPO, 1972), and Joseph M. Heiser, Jr., Logistics Support (Washington: USGPO, 1974).

134

and that we would have another Dien Bien Phu. We pointed out to him that we had small detachments of advisors all over the highlands, including a number of them who had been in Pleiku for years. But, he wouldn't let us do it, so we compromised on An Khe, which was halfway between Qui Nhon and Pleiku. went up there myself with a party from the 1st Cavalry and picked the place out. But, it was a lot more difficult to go into An Khe than it would have been to have gone to Pleiku. So, that's just one
high plateau. But, Admiral Sharp said that Pleiku

was too

far inland

example.

We

had a

difficult

time

in

determining exactly the sizing of our logistic forces because

it

was
The

hard to predict what the consumption of gasoline, diesel, and ammunition would be. Generally speaking, though, during the time that
best example of that
I I

was
I

there,

we were

little

thin

on the
in

logistics side.
first

came from

a meeting

used to chair every morning


airlift,

Saigon. The

report

always got was on the backlog of our

tactical intratheater

C-130s and C-123s. That backlog

would go up, and up, and up, whenever we ran an operation. Then, we would work that backlog back down by stopping all major operations. After doing that, we again would be able to move the 173rd or the 101st, or the Vietnamese, and support another operation during which the logistic backlog once again would grow. So, all in all, it was a very fine tuned thing.

135

Note:

Arrows indicate flow of supplies from major support commands to field support commands.

U.S. ARMY SUPPORT COMMAND DA NANG NAVAL SUPPORT ACTIVITY DA NANG

U.S.

QUI

ARMY SUPPORT NHON

COMMAND

U.S.

ARMY SUPPORT CAM RANH BAY

COMMAND

US. ARMY SUPPORT

COMMAND- SAIGON

NAVAL
ISJ

SUPPORT ACTIVITY- SAIGON

LOGISTICAL

COMMAND

CORPS TACTICAL ZONES AND SUPPORT COMMAND AREAS OF RESPONSIBILITY

Corps

tactical zone

boundary

Map 21

136

CHAPTER

VII

Introducing Agility:

The

First Division

INTERVIEWER:
March

After serving as the

MACV

J-3 for a period of time, you were reassigned

in

By this time you had extensive command experience, particularly at the battalion and battle group levels. You had commanded previously in combat, and you had been able to observe the war in Vietnam for a couple of years. Now you were taking over a large organization. What were your objectives for the division, and
of 1966, as the of the 1st Infantry Division.

commander

your philosophy of

command?*
of

GEN DEPUY:

The greatest influence on me was the impact

my two years as J-3 MACV.


in

It

was
I

a period of transition

from counterinsurgency support to direct American combat involvement.

had a unique opportunity to learn about the organization and tactics of the VC. Also

that period

we

developed together with the

GVN

a pattern of response to that particular threat

an Asian

insurgency organized and executed by World Class revolutionaries.


beginning that the North Vietnamese
threat.

Army would

intervene

We didn't know at the massively. We saw three levels of


middle the local forces such
In

At the bottom the


'65,

guerrillas in the

hamlets and

villages. In the

as the district companies or battalions, and at the top the Main Force regiments and divisions.
late

1964 through

we

helped the

GVN
and

organize a multi-layer attack against this structure


it

in

the

area of Saigon. Called

HOP TAC

(cooperation/coordination),

involved three kinds and levels of

operation. At the center the police


structure

intelligence agencies

sought to root out the

VC

infra-

the terrorists and subversive cells and the

VC

political organization.

This operation

was

Around and outside the secure center was an area shaped like a doughnut in which the ARVN regular battalions and regiments sought to destroy or chase away the VC guerrillas and local forces. This was called "clearing". The idea was that once the area was cleared, Popular and Regional Forces would be organized at the village and district level to maintain security and the central secure area would be expanded. Thus, pacification would be extended throughout the country. But, the VC Main Forces were organized to defeat this concept. For example, VC provincial battalions like our friends in the Phu Loi battalion or regiments like the 271 and 272 from War Zones C and D, would move in on short campaigns or single battles to tear up the Popular and Regional Forces and defeat the ARVN. They did this often and well. These attacks demoralized the entire GVN civil and military structure, and defeated pacification efforts. Indeed, by late 1964 and early '65 they had nearly won the war. Therefore, the third element of the HOP TAC plan was for the elite units of the ARVN airborne, marines, and rangers to operate outside the doughnut area, and to go after the Main Force VC to destroy or
called "securing."
*For additional information on the 1st Infantry Division during this period see Jimmie E. Wilson, ed., First Infantry Vietnam: July 1965 - April 1967 (Tokyo: Dai Nippon Printing Company, Ltd., 1967), and Brigade Information Office, A Pictorial History of the 2nd Brigade, 1st Infantry Division (Tokyo: Dai Nippon Printing

Division in

Company,

Ltd., 1966).

137

and thus protect the pacification effort. These operations were called "Search and Destroy." tell you all this because the original purpose and mission for US troops was this third mission. All this was not without controversy. The Chief of Staff of the Army thought he was sending the 1st Division to practice counterinsurgency that is, clearing and securing, civic action and Psy Ops. MACV wanted the 1st Division for Search and Destroy. We did not do a good job in MACV in explaining this to incoming divisions. For example, the Marines came in and started securing and clearing and practicing pacification operations under the tutelage of Lieutenant General Krulak, the Marine counterinsurgent. Soon, of course, they were drawn into a brutal Main Force war with the North Vietnamese just south of the DMZ. When the 1st Division came in, it began to patrol its area. It had some very big fights with the 9th VC Division which contested the area. These were single battalion battles on our side like the 1st Battalion, 28th Infantry at Lo Ke and the 2d Battalion, 2d Infantry at Long Xuyen.
to disrupt their operations
I

was my idea to go after the Main Forces wherever they could be found and to go after them with as many battalions as could get into the fight what was later called "pile-on". To do that required a very agile and fast moving division, a division which was, in fact,
It
I

airmobile.

My
it

initial

efforts

were

to create just

such a

division.

took

it

as

my
III

main mission to

defeat or disrupt the activities of

minimum

was

essential to

VC Main Forces north of Saigon in the Corps zone. As a keep the 9th VC division entirely out of the populated areas. [See Map
all

the

22, page 139] General Westmoreland also wanted the

1st Infantry Division to

be mobile. His idea was that he

was

He wanted them to go into Tay Ninh Province, and up to Song Be, and down to Xuan Loc, or Wherever it was likely that the VC/NVA main force entirely agreed, was that the US units were operating at the time. His philosophy, with which units were there to fight the enemy "big boys," the big regiments that were tearing up the ARVN and destroying the pacification effort. knew the difference between what the division was doing and what was expected of it. Now, if you ask me if General Westmoreland told me precisely to do these things, he didn't. But, we had worked together closely for two years. It was clear to me that
bringing
in

US

troops to turn the war around.

General William C. Westmoreland,

Commander, US

Military

Assistance Command, Vietnam (MACV), and United States Army, Vietnam (USARV)

138

TAY NINH

1STDIVTA0I

RUNG/ SAT

TAN SON NHUToi

SPECIAL I ZONE

SAIGON

Map 22

1st Infantry Division's

Area of Operations

139

soon as got there, moved the division around a lot. even moved it sometimes when really didn't have very good intelligence on which to base the move. just moved it to get it moving. moved my CP to Phuoc Tuy, then to Tay Ninh, then to An Loc and Quan Loi, and then to Dau Tieng, because wanted the division to be mentally mobile as well as physically mobile. wanted a division that could pile-on. visualized a division commanded from a helicopter in flight. And, looked for people who could do that, and for people who thought that
he wanted
to get cracking. So, as
i I I I

me

way. Also,
duties.

looked for people

who

couldn't think that

way so

that

could send them on to other

INTERVIEWER:
people what

infer

going to get the division moving, and

from your comments that your philosophy was pretty simple. You were in terms of being the commander, you were going to tell
of them.

was expected

To be on your team they had


Is

to be folks

who felt

the

same

as

you did about getting on with the job, wherever you put them.

that right?

GEN DEPUY: Yes. wanted people who were flexibly minded, didn't need a lot of instructions, would get cracking, and would get out and do something useful on their own once they were given a general direction. Of course, was also interested, as always have been, in the problems down in the squads and the platoons, because realized that was seeing the same problems occur all over again. They just weren't trained and were stumbling into battles. Mind you, they stumbled into battles under me, too, but wanted to try to help all could in that respect. So, started putting out instructions on overwatches and on finding out where the enemy was by using only a small number of people, but using lots of firepower and frontal parapet foxholes, and things of that nature, which, guess, was really a culmination of everything we've been talking about.
I I I I I I I I I

INTERVIEWER:

After you took

during a couple of operations,

command and had a chance to look at the soldiers how did you find their morale and willingness to fight?
like

function

GEN DEPUY:
fine.

thought the soldiers were just


just as

soldiers always are,

everywhere

they were

when you compared division personnel at that time with those of a later period, the division was lucky. It had a lot of good long-term, experienced sergeants. It also had the 1st Division spirit. It would do anything it was asked to do.
They were good as
their leaders. In fact,

was major operation, Operation BIRMINGHAM, in which you had a lot of success. You was a or two really mean fights, the battle of Lo Go being one of them. But,
It

INTERVIEWER:

wasn't long after you assumed

command

that the division

involved
also

in

had one

it

division level

operation

which you had little influence planning. Would you comment on that?
in

in

terms of the

tactical planning, or in

terms of support

exchanged one brigade for another because one brigade didn't do very well. One brigade was slow on the uptake so replaced it with the 2nd Brigade commanded by Ernie Milloy. We hopped all around War Zone C, but we didn't find very much. Then one day a fighter bomber happened to drop a bomb on some 55-gallon fuel drums hidden along the river. So, we went over and searched along the riverbank. Now, it turned out

GEN DEPUY: We sent

two brigades

to

Tay Ninh.

140

that the riverbank

was a depot which

stretched for about ten miles. This

was along

the border with

Cambodia. That whole operation taught us how to operate. The brigade and the battalion commanders then knew that we wanted to conduct a lot of air mobile search operations, how we wanted them to be conducted, and that we were going to be very flexible. The only real concrete accomplishment was that we scarfed up all the supplies that had been stacked along the river, of
which there was a substantial amount. One place had four or five thousand uniforms. remember finding lots of sewing machines. We made a haul in sewing machines. It must have been a
I

quartermaster depot.

INTERVIEWER:
a

Did you have any problems with your logistical support on that operation? Later

on, you established policies

whereby every three or four days we could just about count on getting change of fatigues and underwear, and little things like that the things that meant something

to the soldiers.

GEN DEPUY:
division to

Well,

we were
I

just learning.

have to

tell

you that the

first

time

ordered the

them except, "We're going. 1st Brigade, go go there." Now, when we went out, the division headquarters commandant and all of the principal staff officers stayed back at base camp, while all of the second team went out with me. That was quite interesting. And, the same thing was true of logistics. The DISCOM stayed back and all of the assistants the assistant
go
into the field,

didn't say anything to

into that area.

2nd Brigade, go

into that area. Division,

quartermaster, the assistant ordnance officer, the assistant transportation officer, the assistant

headquarters commandant, and the assistant chief

went

out. Well,

we

turned that

all

around.

team went out and the second team stayed back. But, it was part of the division's work very well that first time because they had never practiced it. It had been home-based logistics, so it took some time to shake that down. By the way, the logisticians were super. The G-4, Gene D'Ambrosio, was and is one of the finest logisticians and soldiers the Army has ever had. Once he knew what we wanted, he and the DISCOM produced miracles.

The

first

mentality at that particular time. And, the logistics didn't

INTERVIEWER: Another
into

aspect of that particular operation at Lo


I

Go was

discussed

later in

the

Career Course at Fort Benning, and

remember that we were

all

very impressed that you had fired

Cambodia during the operation.

were up at Lo Go. The two battalions up there were Dick Prillaman's 1st and Bill Hathaway's 2nd Battalion, 16th Infantry. They moved north parallel to the Cambodian border and got in a little fight. Some of the fire they were getting was from across the Ben Go River in Cambodia, so we just fired artillery over there. We fired artillery along the riverbank into Cambodia, and remember that some reporter found out about it and asked me if had authorized it, and replied that had directed it.
Battalion,

GEN DEPUY: We
2nd

Infantry,

INTERVIEWER: At the time,

that represented a

change to the

rules of

engagement.

141

GEN DEPUY:

Incidentally, there

was no

population there.

It

was

just the middle of the jungle,

with nothing but birds and snakes.

INTERVIEWER: We're
division, only the

not going to cover each and every operation during your time with the
us. Please discuss

ones that seem significant to

your scheme to lure the main


a crack at

force regiments of the 9th

VC

Division out into the

open so that you could get

them.

GEN DEPUY:

I'd like

to discuss that

in

the context of that entire campaign, because

we fought a

campaign up there against the 9th VC Division, or maybe they were fighting a campaign against us, I'm not sure which it was. In any event, for some reason or another, the 9th VC Division, which had four regiments at that time, including the 101st NVA Regiment, elected to fight a campaign for control of Highway 13 up north of Lai Khe, north of Chon Thanh. There were four big battles which all took place in June and the first two or three days in July of 1966. The first battle was the smallest of them all. Kyle Bowie's 2nd Battalion, 28th Infantry, fought that battle against a battalion up at the Loc Ninh Plantation. No, wait, there was a battle even before that. The first battle was at the railroad tracks between Chon Thanh and An Loc the battle of Ap where Troop "A" of the 1st Squadron, 4th Cavalry, got into a mammoth fight. They Tau were attacked by a whole regiment there, and we threw Herb McChrystal's 2nd Battalion, 18th Infantry, into that fight as a relief force. That particular engagement was a very spectacular one. It involved the entire 272nd Regiment, with all three battalions in line. The VC recon company was the foot of the "L" shaped ambush. There were very heavy casualties on both sides. But, it was a troop against a regiment 135 Americans against 1 ,200 VC. The next battle was Kyle Bowie's at Loc Ninh. Then, there was the battle at what we called Golden Gate, which was located between Loc Ninh and An Loc. This battle involved two VC regiments, the 271st and the 273rd Regiments. The last battle, which we liked the most, although I'm not sure that the 1st Battalion, 2nd Infantry loved it so much, was the battle of the Minh Thanh Road, which again, involved the 272nd
Regiment. [See

Map 23, page


of that

143]

The precursor

was

the battle of Golden Gate, between Loc Ninh and

occurred because

we had

told the

An Loc

Province Chief that

we were going

An Loc, which to send some cavalry

up to Loc Ninh and bring some engineer road graders back. And, sure enough, within a couple of days, when we sent the cavalry troop up there, they were attacked by two regiments. So, we thought that if they were going to do that to us, then we'll try to do it to them. So, we told the same Province Chief in the presence of his whole staff that although we had a tough time moving our engineer equipment around the last time, we were going to do it again, only this time we were going to move them down to Minh Thanh and fix up the airfield down there. We told the Province Chief that we were going to send our folks down on such and such day and that we'd like some of
his security

people to help us. The reason

we

did that

was because we had spotted


off the road,

the radio of the


right in the

272nd Regiment located


middle.

just off that road,

about 2,000 meters

and

Anyway, instead of sending one cavalry troop, we really sent two with infantry aboard, which probably was a mistake. We had artillery that we had brought in under other pretenses spotted all around the area. We had Bob Haldane's 1st Battalion, 28th Infantry, lined up at the Dutchman's place getting ready to go. We had Jack Conn's 2nd Battalion, 2nd Infantry, down at Minh Thanh, and John Bard had the 1st of the 18th Infantry all ready to go on the flank of the

142

ambush

site.

So,

we had

three infantry battalions, most of the cavalry squadron and a couple of

companies of the 2nd Infantry mounted and ready to go.

INTERVIEWER: "B" Company was the only one mounted!


Company was mounted. Your memory is better than mine. We had air available, and we had the artillery registered. We went down the road and, sure enough, they did just what we wanted them to do they attacked us. And then, the reaction forces went in. It wasn't perfect, but it wasn't bad. Sid Berry was in command; it was his brigade, the 1st Brigade. guess we took a lot of pleasure out of the fact that this was one of the few times that they did just what we wanted them to do rather than us doing what they wanted us to do. And, it

GEN DEPUY:

Okay, only "B"

was,
In

would

say, a successful operation.


in

these several battles


battle,

Tau 0, the cavalry


end. That

June and July 1966, we tried to we were able to get one infantry

reinforce as rapidly as possible. At

Ap

battalion into the area but at the very

was 2-18 under Herb McChrystal. At Loc Ninh we did not reinforce not enough time and too far away. At Golden Gate we brought in 2-18 in two locations plus the 1-28 and 2-2. At Minh Thanh we brought in 1-28, 1-18, 1-16, and 2-2. So, you can see that we were getting better faster and more nimble.

CHON THANH
MICHELIN PLANTATION

en

critique of the Battle of

DAU TIENG
LAI

Ap Tau
1st

for

members

of the

Squadron, 4th Cavalry

KHE
L

MILES

Map 23 - The

Battle of

Ap Tau

143

INTERVIEWER: would be
I

remiss from the historical point of view

if

left this

particular chapter

of your career without asking about that marvelous fighting invention, the

"Go-go Chinook."
into a platoon

GEN DEPUY: Somebody


called the

put a

lot

of

guns

in

some Chinooks and formed them


to be our

answer to the ambush. They gave them to the 1st Division to test. don't think they liked us very much and left. The first time we used them was in the battle at Golden Gate. One of these huge things was hit and fluttered down right in between the two engaged forces. Finally, somehow, while our hearts were in our throats, it lurched back out of there. At the Minh Thanh road, the same thing happened. One got shot down right in the middle of the ambush, right at the most critical point geographically and chronologically. So, they were an interesting embellishment to the proceedings. It was an idea whose time had not yet come. However, the crews of the Go-go birds were incredibly brave and
Birds." This platoon
I

"Go-go

was going

aggressive.

INTERVIEWER: But, was one way of getting a lot of firepower into the action, the way always saw The next operation that was of note was ATTLEBORO.
it
I

at least that's

it.

GEN DEPUY:
rice

Yes,

ATTLEBORO was one that we got into through the backdoor.


was out
cutting
its

This

was when
lot

the 196th Infantry Brigade

teeth

in

the area west of the Michelin, where a


it

of

had been found before. They were

patrolling

all

around the area, and


in fortified

so happened that the

9th

VC

Division

had decided to attack the Soui Da Special Forces camp about that time.
regiments went into attack positions

Two
all

of

the division's

VC

camps

right in the

middle of the
for
all

area where the 196th

was

patrolling.

So, from finding nothing and having no contact at


itself in

several days, the 196th suddenly found

the middle of a hornet's nest.


It

The brigade was

broken up into company-size and smaller


time, the

units.

quickly turned into a terrible shambles. At one


I

commander of the 1st Battalion, 27th Infantry, Sandy Meloy, was commanding, oh, don't know how many companies, probably nine or ten companies and he had been without sleep for three or four days. It was just an awful thing. Anyhow, General Weyand ordered us to go over there and get involved and take over, which we did. In fact we were already there when he issued the order. We got the 196th out of there and back to their camp at Tay Ninh, where they had to sort themselves out. They had taken a lot of casualties. It was really a tragic thing. We had many small fights and one large battle which occurred when Jack Whitted's 1st Battalion, 28th Infantry, was put down about 300 meters from the VC's main ammo dump. We took out
thousands of rounds of ammunition, weapons, mines, claymores, etcetera. [See
145]
I'd like

Map

24,

page

because some people have been critical about the 1st Division's use of a lot of firepower. would say, and this obviously sounds somewhat defensive, that we fired a lot of ammunition during fights but fired much less ammunition between fights.
to say

something about that


I

fight

up the records and had some charts made before left over there. The 25th Division fired more artillery than the 1st Division fired by a wide margin. But, we got our reputation from the concept that we used when fighting. Let's say that there was a company or a battalion in a clearing and the VC or the NVA were attacking it. The problem, as we analyzed it, was that one of three things was happening in a "doughnut," a doughnut that might be two or three hundred

happened

to look

144

yards

in

depth. The

enemy were
in

either reinforcing, or they

were maneuvering, or they were


reliable
artillery
fire.

withdrawing. But, you never knew which, because you could not see them. The least
reports

come from people

contact because they are under

So,

we would

take

told

and simply put boxes of fire around the fight and tell them to continue to shoot until we them to stop. Maybe on one side we'd put in air strikes and put in artillery boxes around the rest. So, they fired a tremendous amount of ammuntion during those fights. And, old "Slam"
batteries

Marshall
into

by accident" a VC battalion had walked one of these barrages and was eliminated. Well, that was no accident. It was the only way
in

the story about

ATTLEBORO,
in

said that "quite

knew of employing firepower


but
it

a jungle fight.

still

think that that

is

precisely the right thing to do,

has been interpreted as just throwing a


I

lot

of artillery out that's not under adjustment.

Anyway, wanted

to get that

in

the record.*

Map 24 Operation

Operation ATTLEBORO ATTLEBORO commenced


14, 1966,

on

with elements of the 196th Infantry Brigade conducting an air mobile assault followed by a search and destroy operation. Although contact with the enemy was initially light and sporadic, before the operation was completed

September

on November 25, it would involve over 22,000 American and allied troops.

*For a detailed discussion of Operation


(Nashville:

ATTLEBORO,

see S.L.A. Marshall,

Ambush: The

Battle of

Dau

Tieng

The Battery

Press, Inc., 1969).

145

INTERVIEWER: Sir, ATTLEBORO. Did the


GEIM

the

1st

Division

flew

in

196th Brigade then

work

for

and took over you?

direct

control

of

Operation

DEPUY: The sequence was


to get
all

rather interesting.

happened
I

to

have flown over to

visit

the

196th Brigade one day just out of plain curiosity, or perhaps,

smelted a fight. At that time they

were beginning
battalions,

these contacts.

looked at the brigade's operations map; they had five

so they had 15 companies scattered around. They had the two "Wolfhound"

battalions, the 27th Infantry, as well as the three of their

own.

looked at that

map and
hair

listened to

what they were


the back of

telling

me, and

knew
I

that there

was

a disaster under
in terrible

way. Every
I

went up on
exactly

my

neck; every instinct told

me that they were

trouble.

didn't

know

what was going on out there, but sensed that they were in terrible trouble. flew home and ordered Colonel Mickey Marks to move his 3rd Brigade headquarters to Dau Tieng. No, told him to send a battalion to Dau Tieng and to be ready to move his headquarters. That's right, that's the first thing did. He sent a battalion and the next day went up again. General Westmoreland's deputy, John Heintges, was up there, and he went back and reported to General Weyand, who was temporarily in command of the Field Force, and told him that there was a disorganized big fight going on up at the Michelin and that he wanted the 1st Division to go up and take over.* had already ordered Mickey to move. also ordered the cavalry to make a night move with the artillery. They moved all the way from Lai Khe down through Saigon, and all the way up Route 1 to Tay Ninh City and then back to Suoi Da that night. There was some confusion in the area but no casualties. wanted some artillery up there and the next morning we moved a lot more in by helicopter. The next day, General Hollingsworth went over and took charge of the Special Forces. They too, were in terrible shape. They had a Nung battalion, a "Mike" or mobile strike force, that had run into one of the VC regiments. The 196th had run into another one. So, Holly took charge of the Special Forces battle, Jack Deane went to the 196th Brigade particularly to Sandy Milloy's fight, and took charge of bringing in the 1st Division. Then we began to pull the 196th out. Eventually, we had most of the 1st Division involved.
I

II

INTERVIEWER:

Did you

recommend
I

the

relief

of the 196th Brigade

commander?

GEN DEPUY:
displeased

No,

did not, but


I

have to say that

his relief or transfer neither surprised

me

or

me because

didn't think that the brigade

was being

well handled.

INTERVIEWER: He was

relieved then?

GEN DEPUY: He was by Westmoreland.

Perhaps transferred

is

more

correct term.

*Lieutenant General John A. Heintges, USA Retired, was commissioned a second lieutenant in the Infantry in 1936, following graduation from the United States Military Academy. In World War II, General Heintges commanded both an infantry battalion and regiment in the 3rd Infantry Division in the European Theater of Operations. Other assignments included duty as the Commanding General, 5th Infantry Division (1963-64); Commanding General, US Army Infantry Center and Commandant, US Army Infantry School (1964-65); Commanding General, Corps (Group),
I

Korea (1965); Deputy Commander, US Military Assistance General, Eighth US Army, Korea (1969-70).

Command, Vietnam

(1965-67);

and Deputy Commanding

146

- v'<">

',,'.''
'.
,

life,

Scenes from Operation

ATTLEBORO

147

INTERVIEWER:
that

think this

is

good
air,

point to ask you about the technology of

modern warfare
did

you had under your

control,

particularly the firepower,


in

the

new

aspect of firepower

and the mobility inherent them and what did you get out of them?
coordination required by tactical

helicopters.

How

you use

Well, guess that the 1st Division, without being organized as an air mobile and without having a large air cavalry squadron, tried to practice what now understand to be the tactical concepts of an air mobile unit. Sometimes people laughed about the 1st Division being the first air mobile division (heavy), and so on. The fact of the matter is, that in the early days in Vietnam, we had more helicopters available operationally from the 1st Aviation Brigade than the 1st Cavalry Division. And, since the 1st Cavalry Division had to maintain its own helicopters, they found it very difficult to lift an entire battalion in one lift. But, you will recall that in the 1st Infantry we did that repeatedly. In fact, there were days when we had 90 lift ships available to the division, plus lots of gunships. That was more air mobility than anybody had before or after, including the 1st Cavalry or the 101st. And, that was true for much of 1966. Well, as we discussed earlier about the French at the Mang Yang Pass, the whole name of the game in Vietnam was to make a contact, and you had to do that with a relatively small unit or you would scare off the enemy. Of course for the small unit that made the initial contact, it was more often than not a nightmare. It often occurred in inaccessible terrain and usually on ground chosen by the other side. So, from then on, the salvation of your own troops, and the success or failure of the operation, depended on how rapidly you could get in combat power. Time was of the essence. We had a rule in the 1st Division that we would not operate one of our infantry battalions outside the range of our own artillery. In order to do that, we often had to position our artillery all around the countryside. was never happy if we had only one battery of artillery in range. really considered that at least two batteries of artillery, firing from two different directions, was the minimum because one battery could also come under attack at the same time. Often we had three, four or five batteries that could fire. And, we tried to get the air in as quickly as possible. think we solved fairly well the problem of being able to fire the artillery and utilize air assets and gunships simultaneously. The heavy ordnance comes from the artillery and the air. The heaviest ordnance is from the air, but when you look at the rate at which they deliver their bombs, it's not any heavier, and sometimes not as heavy, as the artillery in terms of pounds of explosive and lethality, although when the air comes in with Cluster Bombs (CBUs) they are very lethal. So, it
I

GEN DEPUY:

division,

was a question of Now, in order

coordinating
to

all

of that.
to

work out the air procedures. You had to have your artillerymen completely indoctrinated and have them positioned in the right place. They had to have their ammunition available at the gun site and be able to shoot fast. You had to have infantry units that could be ordered to move. For example, we might inform a battalion, "We are sending helicopters load when they arrive and then come to this area. I'll tell you what to do when you get here." We had to have infantry that could move just like that. There were several occasions when asked battalions to move without sending them any helicopter lift. They bummed rides here, there, and everywhere. Once told Jack Conn and his 2nd Battalion, 2nd Infantry, to get up to Quan Loi any way he could. We were in a fight and were using all of the helicopters. He arranged to borrow two C-130s from the Air Force and made it from Lai Khe in about four hours. First, it's the mentality; it's a doctrinal understanding of agility and speed. It's
do that you had
I
I

148

and gunships, without having long pauses in which nothing happens. By and large, think we succeeded in doing all of that. People have said our air/mobile operations were too large and we put so many troops in that there was no chance of any contact. think that's a legitimate criticism, and we did some of that. On the other hand, if you are trying to surround something fast, or trying to get in fast, like Al Haig did when he put his entire battalion into Ben Sue in a matter of 30 seconds after they appeared over the trees, then that's okay. There are times when you want to put a lot in. That brings to mind a period during the time when General Abrams was in command and there were very few contacts. It was very difficult to establish contact because the enemy was in Cambodia. And so, they broke down battalions into companies, companies into platoons, and platoons into squads, for the purpose of conducting saturation patrolling. They weren't getting any contact. However, as soon as you start getting large contact, your forces congeal back up to company level as a minimum size, because a company is the smallest element that can take care of itself if you expect heavy contact. So, that takes you back to the profile of activity in Vietnam very high in 1965, '66, and early '67, and very low in late '67 until TET, high in TET and for six months after TET, and then, low again. So, it was a roller coaster. If you talk to people present in one period, they tend not to understand what was going on and to be critical of what happened in another period. This may be a good time to talk about the functioning of the division staff and some of the
air, artillery
I I

the technical ability to coordinate maneuver with

people involved. During

my tenure with
Bill

the 1st Division

had three G-3s

Sam Walker,

Al Haig

and Paul Gorman.

Bill

Le Gro was the G-2 and Gene D'Ambrosio the G-4. Ed Kitchens was the

Chief of Staff following

Deane, Mel Zais, and the

was a super staff, and the ADCs incomparable Jimmy Hollingsworth* were no
Glasgow.
It

Bernie Rogers, Jack


small shakes either.

*General Sam S. Walker, USA Retired, was commissioned in the Infantry in 1946. During the Korean conflict, General Walker served in the 19th Infantry Regiment, 24th Infantry Division. Other assignments included duty as the Commander (Cdr), 2nd Brigade, 1st Infantry Division (1966); Commanding General (CG), 3rd Infantry Division (197274); Cdr, Berlin Command (1974-75); and CG, Allied Land Forces, Southeastern Europe (1977-78). General Alexander M. Haig, Jr., USA Retired, was commissioned in the Cavalry in 1947. During the Korean conflict, he served as Aidede-Camp to the X Corps CG. Other assignments included duty as the Deputy Assistant to the President for National Security Affairs (1970-73); and Vice Chief of Staff of the Army (1973). After retiring in 1973, General Haig served as the Chief of Staff to the President (1973-74). Recalled to active duty in 1974, General Haig served as Supreme Allied Cdr, Europe (1974-79). Retiring again in 1979, General Haig later served in the Reagan Administration as the Secretary of State (1981-82). General Paul F. Gorman, Jr., USA Retired, was commissioned in the Infantry in 1950. During the Korean conflict, General Gorman served in the 32nd Infantry Regiment, 7th Infantry Division. Subsequent assignments included duty as the Cdr, 1st Brigade, 101st Airborne Division (1970-71); CG, 8th Infantry Division (197779); Assistant to the Chairman, Joint Chiefs of Staff (1981-83); and Commander in Chief, US Southern Command (1983-84). For a biographic sketch of General Bernard W. Rogers see page 109. General John R. Deane, Jr., USA Retired, was commissioned in the Infantry in 1942. During World War II, General Deane served with the 415th Infantry Regiment, 104th Infantry Division, in the European Theater of Operations. Other assignments included duty as the CG, 173rd Airborne Brigade (1966-67); CG, 82nd Airborne Division (1968-69); Chief of Research, Development and Acquisition (1973-75); and CG, US Army Materiel Development and Readiness Command (DARCOM) (1975-77). General Me/vin Zais, deceased, was commissioned in the Infantry in the US Army Reserve in 1937. During World War II, General Zais commanded the 3rd Battalion, 517th Parachute Infantry Regiment, 17th Airborne Division, in the European Theater of Operations. Subsequent assignments included duty as the CG, 101st Airborne Division (Airmobile) (1968-69); CG, XXIV Corps (1969-70); CG, Third Army (1972-73); and CG, Allied Land Forces, Southeastern Europe (1973-76). Lieutenant General James F. Hollingsworth, USA Retired, was commissioned in the Infantry in 1940. During World War II, General Hollingsworth commanded a company, a battalion, and an armored task force in the 2nd Armored Division, in North Africa and the European Theater of Operations. Other assignments included duty as the CG, Fort Jackson (1969-70); CG, US Army, Alaska (1970-71); CG, Third Regional Assistance Command and Senior Advisor, Military Region 3 (1971-72); and CG, Corps (ROK/US) Group, Korea (1973-76).
I

149

We

based

all

of our operations on

Bill

Le Gro's intelligence. The Le Gro/Gorman team

was

unbeatable.

We moved fast to exploit intelligence obtained concerning any location or movement.


we moved or how many battalions we threw into a battle, our logistics system the occasion. Many of our biggest battles occurred when we sought the enemy out
fast

No matter how
always rose to

based on our intelligence and on our appreciation of

was our primary


certain area.

source.

Long range

patrols

most likely actions. Signal intelligence sometimes verified such intelligence but often
their
is,

provided invaluable negative intelligence

that

information that the


to locate almost

enemy was

not

in

We

studied his infrastructure and

managed

all

of his main camps.

Often

we were
in

surprised, but so

was

he.

We fought several
on Route 13
in its

major campaigns against the 9th


the

VC

Division, our

worthy opponent
fall.

the

first

in

summer

of 1966 and near the


1st Division.

Michelin

the

The 9th

Division did not fare well

prolonged contest with the

INTERVIEWER: One type


was
night operations.

of operation that

We

those operations that the


patrolling. But, there

was controversial in that a lot of the units didn't do it, really never heard much from you in terms of night operations, yet division did do involved frequent night movements and a lot of

were

a lot of things that

we

probably could have done at night and didn't.


satisfied with

What were your thoughts about was doing?

night operations

and were you

what the

1st Division

GEN DEPUY:

Well,

probably should have done more, but,

really,

there are only

two things

that
I

you can do at night, one of which is just move without fighting. We discussed that earlier. So, think that perhaps we should have moved some battalions and companies into blocking positions or ambushes at night. But, as far as moving and fighting at night, when you don't know exactly where the enemy is, I'm against it because don't think you can develop any combat power. If
I

he's there and organized, and you're


results.

moving and disorganized, you are not going to like the However, don't forget how effective our operations were in the Rung Sat, the mangrove

Typical scenes

in

the

Rung Sat Special Zone

150

swamps below Saigon, where the VC tried to mine the ship channels. In the Rung Sat we moved swamps on foot waist deep in water and muck to establish ambushes. The VC moved only by boat. They did not know could not know where we were. At night, as they moved
through the

about by boat, they would run


battalions through

into our ambushes and be destroyed. We rotated a number of Rung Sat and had spectacular results. The 1st Battalion, 18th Infantry pioneered that technique. There were no big battles, just dozens of successful ambushes. Normally, the battalion in the Rung Sat achieved the best combat results of all the battalions in the

division.

Rung Sat

We also found whole every bit of


it

villages

on

stilts

and naval mine factories

there. All the fighting in

was at

night.

INTERVIEWER:

Hopefully, you can get

them

to attack

you

at night,

which

is

even

better.

GEN DEPUY:

Oh, yes. They did a

lot

of that.

INTERVIEWER:

In

terms of night operations,

thought that that was what

we did

best.

GEN DEPUY:
units

Yes, that's what

wanted

to do, to

have them attack. Additionally,

we found

that

deployed across major

VC

supply and courier routes had great success at night. For


sit

example, Al Haig's battalion, the 1st of the 26th Infantry, loved to

on a sandy

hill

south of Chon

Thanh, because

all

night, every night, small

groups of

VC would stumble into


in.

his outposts.

INTERVIEWER: That's why, as a policy, hammocks waiting for the dark to come.

the division always dug

They

didn't

sit

around

in their

Romans. They always put up a camp. The Romans put up a wall wherever they were; an earthen wall at first. They dug in every night because they operated alone in hostile territory and so did we.
Right.

GEN DEPUY:

So

did the

time went on, what was your appraisal of the technical ability of your small and individual soldiers? I'd like for you to address three things: did you think they could shoot; what did you think of their ability to move, i.e. did they react properly; and, what did you
units

INTERVIEWER: As

think of their

communications
suspect that

capabilities?

GEN DEPUY:
we
did poorly

we

didn't shoot very well.

suspect that

in

those quick encounters

and the Australians. With respect to the cloverleaf and that type of activity, to the extent it was used and, by the way, know it was used only by some units because saw a lot of examples where it wasn't. remember a patrol in Rufe Lazzell's battalion, the 1st of the 16th Infantry, near Suoi Da, when General Bernie Rogers landed and tried to collect them. There was a platoon that was bumbling through the woods in the old-fashioned way single file and just happened to stop for a rest break in the middle of an ambush. They
to say, the British
I
I

compared

was the end of the day's work. So, they just sat down in the middle of an ambush which made it very easy for the VC. But, they weren't cloverleafing, you can be sure of
decided that that
that.

Nonetheless,

do think that

we had

fewer units stumbling into

killing

zones because of that

151

technique. But,
do, and
I

maybe

the wish

is

the father of the thought here. That's what

think

it

did help that way.

As

far

was designed to as communications were concerned, at what levels are


it

you

talking

about?
think that

INTERVIEWER: Do you

we talked
I

too

much on

the radio? That's a frequent criticism.

GEN DEPUY:
agility of

I'm sure

we

did

and

think that the analysis afterwards by the signal intelligence

people pretty well proved that

we

did.

We
I

did a lot of talking

in

order to increase the control and


I

the division, and the speed with which

we

could move. But,

think

we

probably paid a

high price for it. That still bothers me. still think our SOIs are too cumbersome. So, we erred on one side. If you followed the current SOIs completely, you didn't have time to fight. What we need to do is come out in the middle. We had Doc Bahnsen working on that at Training and Doctrine Command (TRADOC). think he made some progress, but don't know how much.
I
I

terms of support for the deployed battalions, combat service support mainly, were there any unique problems or solutions that stand out in your mind?
In

INTERVIEWER:

answer that question than am. We pretty much left it up to the Division Support Command (DISCOM) and brigade trains to provide what was needed. The critical supplies upon which division operations wholly depended were ammunition and POL POL to move and ammo to fight. We were major users of CH-47 choppers to move both. Our DISCOM was flexible and fast under the directions of our G-4s who were the best in the business. could throw the division around the III Corps area at will and the support would always be there. But, you were at the receiving end, and it always looks different at the other end it never looks as good. What did you think?

GEN DEPUY:

Well, you are

in

a better position to

INTERVIEWER:

We always had what we needed.

One

thing that you had, and

it

probably saved
I

Whitted's battalion, were the pre-rigged bundles of various types of ammunition standing by.

remember Clarence Sprouse, the


and getting the
stuff out to

Division Sergeant Major,

was down
fast as
it

there guiding helicopters

in

those

who were shooting


in

it

up as

could be given to them.

GEN DEPUY:
too, because

That system was


a unit needs

effect long before that particular battle. That's very important


is
it

when
It's

the other thing.

no time to count got to be a pre-packaged push package.


hit a

ammo there

or time to ask for this, that,

and

you will, that surrounds your reputation as a the handling of leaders who were found to be incompetent. It's been said that you fired scores of battalion commanders and I'd like you to address that issue. Also, if you would, contrast the handling of unsatisfactory leaders in World War II, with how it was done
major controversy,
if

INTERVIEWER: I'd like to commander in Vietnam

in

Vietnam.
Well,

GEN DEPUY:
a

guess

have to say that I'm

fairly well

convinced that once a

man

has

made

bad mistake, not of judgment, but of incompetence, and revealed himself by

his actions, actions

152

that are the


to

consequence of

a general
life.

weakness
Of course,

in
I

command, then
can't say that
I

there

is

very

little

you can do

change him

at that stage in his

can predict ahead of time

who

they are going to be. Now, as for relieving scores of people, based on the paper which you have
just

shown me which

refreshes
officer,

former Special Forces

my memory, there was one infantry battalion commander, a who was relieved rather early on. He really should never have been
were three
infantry battalion
I

a corporal. But, other than that, there


I

and three

artillery battalion

commanders relieved. am prepared to admit that it's possible was wrong on some of those. In the case of two of the artillery battalion commanders, the DIVARTY commander relieved them
And, in the case of one of the infantry battalion commanders, it was just plain unwillingness to obey orders and do what he was told to do. In the case of another one, really should have relieved him the first time he failed but gave him another chance, and he killed a lot more people our people. In the case of the third one, think may have acted hastily. So, really, we're not talking about dozens or hundreds, we're talking about a few. And then, there were some division staff people, a G-5, a Provost Marshall, and a PIO, and some others like that. Oh, don't know what they all added up to but would say 10 or 12, something on that order.
and
I

agreed with

his actions. In

one case,

took the

initiative.

INTERVIEWER: Well, as of the end of December 1966, there were 11. Now, in your correspondence we found at least one reference where you declined to accept an officer because
you
felt

that he didn't have the necessary experience.


it

believe

it

was an

artilleryman

always thought that perhaps


going around
in

was not accepting people

that led to the horrible stories that

and I've were

the ranks of the lieutenant colonels and colonels for a period of time.

happened was that they sent me a list of 24 lieutenant They were from all branches but most of them were slated for battalion command. believe that only accepted two from that list. Now, the reason turned them down is that these were men who had been most of them had been lieutenants in Korea, and hadn't had any kind of experience with combat units since. That's one of the reasons the Army is wise now to select for command. You know, being a commander of a unit is not a right, it's a privilege, a privilege that you've got to earn. You have to train for it. just didn't see any reason why we should train people who had never had a company command, had never been a battalion S-3, and had never been a battalion exec, when we wanted to win a war, and when others were available. So, now you have heard my feelings on that. In World War and specifically in the 90th Division, the problem was that prior to combat there wasn't any effort made to eliminate people who were clearly deficient. As a consequence, we suffered inexcusable and enormous casualties. In the six weeks in Normandy prior to the breakout, the 90th Division lost 100 percent of its soldiers and 150 percent of its officers. In infantry units, where these casualties were almost entirely concentrated, the rates ran at 300 to 400 percent in just six weeks, as you will remember. That's indelibly marked on my mind. told that story to General Johnson when he came out to see me. And, told him that couldn't change; either would have to be removed or would continue to remove officers who thought didn't show much sign of learning their trade, and, at the same time, were getting a lot of people hurt. You can't get a soldier back once he's killed.
Well, the
first

GEN DEPUY:
fill

thing that

colonels to

whole

variety of jobs.
I

II

153

know that's the way wars are frequently fought, but Vietnam didn't have to be fought that way because it was a small war. Besides, we didn't put everybody in it, anyway. We could have put the
I

and kept them longer. We could have saved lives and been more effective that way. Here we had a conflict between using Vietnam to train the Army for the next war, versus trying to win the war in Vietnam. Those were the two conflicting points of view. So, with regard to having six months in command and trying to rotate everybody through, I've always said that that was running the war for the benefit of the officer corps. So, in any event, I'm sure made mistakes on some of the people relieved. But, don't think made very many. think most of them were cut and dried cases of pure ineptitude or malfeasance. acted in every case on behalf of the lives of

good ones

in

our 1st Division soldiers So,


if
I

who

always paid the price for the actions of weak or incompetent leaders.
probably do the

had to do

it

again,

I'd

same

thing, only

I'd

probably do

it

little

more

cleverly.

INTERVIEWER:
which
is

It

needs to be remembered that there were,


in

in fact, just

1 1

names on

that letter

a far cry

from what people back

the United States apparently were talking about.

GEN DEPUY: You

might be interested to

know
I

that

in
it

the

First

World War,

in

the

first

month

of

the war, Field Marshal Joseph Joffre relieved,

was 72 general officers several Army commanders and scores of corps and division commanders. Now, you see what that process was. It was a peacetime army going into war, and when you send an army into war you find that a lot of
believe

people aren't

fit

for war.

They

just aren't the kind of people

you want to

fight a war.

have a
people

lot

of

human wastage; you have wastage


in

of both the people

who

are relieved,

And, you and of the

who

suffered while they were

command

before being relieved.

by the time got there, which was in July of 1966, was that the division was really proud of the fact that it was the "Big Red One." There was a good feeling about the division. We had confidence in our leaders. We had
Sir,

INTERVIEWER:

one

of the things that

marked the

division

confidence that

we had

the stuff

we needed

to fight

and we

felt

very strongly that anytime any of

us got into trouble, the whole division

was going

to get us out. That's just the to have your

way we felt about

it.

Now, one of the too was that

things that you did


in

and you appeared

ADCs working

that way,

terms of keeping people feeling good, there seemed to be a rather


visits,

liberal policy

towards awards and decorations,

pats on the back, and

that sort of thing.

up on your comment about the division going to the aid of somebody. That was a conscious policy that we talked about quite a lot. Now, the people to whom that was really important, were the sergeants and the privates who went out on patrols. Whether they were in the Long Range Reconnaissance Patrols (LRRP), or just in an infantry battalion, they knew that we would, in fact, not only go to help them, but go right away. It was very important for them to know that. And, agree with you, that belief did permeate the division. meet soldiers who remember that. They believed that. It was a great morale builder. To this day, As a matter of fact, during that entire time, we had no men missing in action. We even committed
Well,
I'd like

GEN DEPUY:

to pick

two
do.

battalions to retrieve Sergeant Nunez's body. In that kind of war,

it's

a very important thing to

You

are asking a lot of people to take a lot of risks,

and to do

a lot of things they

would

rather

154

not do. They'd rather be doing almost anything else. So,


a natural

we

did have that reputation

and that was

outgrowth of our quick reaction type operation. As for being liberal about awards and decorations sure. My God, why not? don't know precisely how many people but perhaps a hundred thousand men from all over this country went
I

through the
they were
in

1st Division while

it

was

in

Vietnam. They were only there for a short period of time.

If

the infantry they didn't last very long.


didn't

They got

sick,

wounded,

or

something

else

happened to them. They


all

over the United States.


getting
I

now

them

out.

go home with much. So, all those decorations now are scattered And you know, my guess is that for awhile they hid them away but are Secondly, the 1st Division was lucky in that was a magnet for talented
it

officers.

won't name them

all

but during

my one

year with the division

we

had Bernie Rogers,

Jack Deane, Mel Zais, Jim Hollingsworth, Paul Gorman, Al Haig,


Cavazos, Dick Prillaman, and 30 others
the colonels and captains

Sam
I

Walker, Bob Haldane, Dick


don't have time to mention

who became

general officers.

who were

legion.*

INTERVIEWER: With
there
basic

regard to awards and decorations, there have been accusations

made

that

was something
load of

commander's packet." This was an awards packet or a awards and decorations, that if one survived as a battalion commander he
called a "battalion

supposedly received

when he

left.

Would you comment on


didn't

that?

GEN DEPUY:

Well,

if

they had such a thing

know about

it.

will

say

this,

though.

General Patton had a theory.

He
it,

said,

"Every successful battalion commander has earned a

Distinguished Service Cross (DSC). Every one

about what he had done to earn


a battalion

but for

Army." He sure he had done it. Well,


in

Third

said that
I

we

might not know


that about

feel a
I

little bit like

commander,

were any good. But, such packet. never heard that expression.
I

company commander for that matter. know they earned it if they we just didn't know about it. However, don't know anything about any
or a
I

INTERVIEWER:
items on uniform.

Right

now the Army is involved in a little What are your thoughts on this subject?

bit

of a controversy concerning special

*For biographic sketches of General Rogers, Deane, Zais, Hollingsworth, Gorman, Haig, and Walker, see page 149. Lieutenant General Robert Haldane, USA Retired, was commissioned a second lieutenant in the Infantry in 1947. Prior to entering the United States Military Academy in 1943, General Haldane served in the European Theater of
Operations as an enlisted soldier
Brigade,
1st

Army Air Corps. Other assignments included duty as the Commander, 3rd Commanding General, US Army Training Center, Fort Polk (1974); Commanding General, 5th Infantry Division (Mechanized) (1975); Chief of Staff, US Army, Europe (1979-80); and Chief of Staff, European Command (1980-82). General Richard E. Cavazos, USA Retired, was commissioned a
in

the

Infantry

Division

(1968-69);

second lieutenant

in

the Infantry

in

1951. During the Korean conflict General Cavazos served as a platoon leader

and

company commander in the 65th Infantry Regiment, 3rd Infantry Division. Subsequent assignments included duty as the Commander, 2nd Brigade, 1st Infantry Division (1970-72); Commanding General, 9th Infantry Division (1977-80); Commanding General, Corps (1980-82); and Commanding General, US Army Forces Command (1982-84). Lieutenant General Richard L. Prillaman, USA Retired, was commissioned a second lieutenant in the Armor in 1950. During the Korean conflict, General Prillaman served as a company commander in the 5th Regimental Combat Team. Subsequent assignments included duty as the Commanding General, US Army Training Center and Fort Jackson (1974-77); Commanding General, 2nd Armored Division (1980-82); and Director, Operations, J-3, Organization of the
III

Joint Chiefs of Staff (1982-84).

155

GEN DEPUY:

Well,

personally
it's

am

in

favor of distinctive items of equipment, and caps, and

all

that sort of stuff, as long as

within reason. But, that's just

my
I

personal feeling.

regretted
at the
I

seeing the berets go.


Aviation Center,
didn't have
in

will

say that

when

went down

to Fort Rucker

and saw the band

orange berets with white laces

in their

boots,

didn't like the coloring. But,

any problems with the black berets on the tankers, or the red berets on the airborne, or
If

the black berets on the 101st, and so on and so forth.


feel better

the troopers liked that, and

it

made them

and tougher,

I'd

give

it

to

them anytime.
tactical things that

INTERVIEWER:

If

we

might go back for just a few minutes to some of the


that
of

happened in Vietnam. Would you compare squad and platoon level, and discuss some maybe threw out, in Vietnam?

war with World War II, tactically, down at the the principles and techniques that you added, or

GEN DEPUY:

Weil, the

first

thing that holds up

in

both cases

is

the type of individual foxhole, or

emplacement; I'm now more convinced than ever that you've got to have frontal cover. Otherwise, you will be suppressed by direct fire, and once you're suppressed by direct fire, the next thing will be hand grenades, and pretty soon, that will be the end of it. So, that was the same for both wars, and will be the same in any future war unless you're fighting from an armored
vehicle of

some sort.

From the offensive point of view, the big difference was between seeking out the enemy force and seeking out terrain. Terrain was less important in Vietnam for two reasons. First, most terrain didn't give you visibility or observation, so it was unimportant from that standpoint. And, it was totally unimportant if it wasn't important to the enemy. So, except for Nui Ba Den and some other big mountains used for radio relays, terrain in Vietnam made no difference. Visibility was what you were looking for, visibility around a defensive position. So, instead of going for terrain and bypassing the enemy, you were forced to fight the enemy. You were forced to do something with him on ground chosen by him. You couldn't pry him out of his position by getting the high ground to his rear, which is what we tried to do in World War II. That led to going right after him, and going right after him led to the things that we talked about earlier. Sometimes, if there were just a few of them, a good dashing charge with a lot of shooting was probably the right thing to do; but, it was awfully hard to tell when that was the right thing to do. If he happened to be in bunkers it was almost suicidal to do that. As you know, preferred that the leading elements not automatically charge the enemy. Attacking the enemy should be done as a result of a decision,
I

not as a result of an automatic response.


I

do not

like

automatic reactions to contact. And,


all

say that, even though


it,

admit that

if

you had

an airborne unit under your command, with


you'd do better by an immediate charge.
it

tigers in

then

it

might be that on the average,

you had a disaster, it would be a big disaster, but often Vietnam, where you had to go directly after the enemy force and you couldn't attack where the enemy was weak, it raised this other question. So, what tried to emphasize was that when you make contact, make contact with a small force because you're going to make contact in
If

worked,

in

adverse circumstances. You're probably going to be

in

his killing zone.


like

contact, don't go after him unless a competent person


battalion

the

commander decides

to

do

so. Try to find out

how

big

After you've made company commander or the he is. Now, we had some rules

156

about

that.

If

you only hear

rifles, it's
if

probably a platoon;
rifles,

probably a company; and

you hear
It is

if you hear machine gun and

a mortar,

machine gun and rifles, it's it's most likely a

battalion. So, act accordingly.

not smart for a platoon to attack a battalion. You'll just lose the

Bau Bang against Paul Gorman's battalion probe around and find the general configuration of the position, and determine whether it's fortified or not, then report back to the next higher headquarters. That way you don't get so enmeshed that you can't shoot at it, or you can't drop a bomb on it. The best thing to do would be to bring up more force and try to surround it, but don't surround it too tightly; that way you can still bomb it. Now, we often tried to do that. Sometimes we made a real mess of it. Sometimes everything went wrong. By the way, the VC decided not to attack Paul Gorman. They were smart. He was loaded for bear. So, those are the big differences. would say that in fighting Russians, or fighting Germans, or fighting in Europe, it should be a very rare thing when you attack right up the hill into the teeth of the defense. Remember, he has a large advantage just because he's down, camouflaged and waiting, while you're up, exposed and moving. You can't see him but he can see you! So, you don't want to fight under those circumstances if you can avoid it. You'd rather be down and waiting for him to move up. That's why if you get behind him and force him to move, you reverse the whole situation. But, in Vietnam that was very difficult to do. You might get behind him but he'd just sneak off to the flank and disappear.
platoon.

We

should do

like

the Viet

Cong

did at

INTERVIEWER: Many
suggesting.

times

in

Vietnam

we

just

weren't patient enough to do what you're

GEN DEPUY:

Well,

we

might as well

talk

about that battle on the 25th of August.

believe

it

was

on the 25th of August. Suffice it to say that Bill Mullen's patrol got into the middle of a VC base camp, and then his company went in to rescue the patrol, and his battalion came to reinforce him,

and then,
in

brought

in

other battalions. Paul Gorman's battalion, the 1st of the 26th Infantry,
1st Battalion, 16th Infantry,

came

from the south. "Goony" Wallace's

came
in

all

the

way

across from
tried to

Lai

Khe, while Elmer Pendleton's 2nd of the 28th Infantry,

came

from the north and

block that escape route.


reported that there were a

We
lot

tried to get

all

around the camp because, obviously, the

patrol

of

enemy.

It

turned out to be a battalion-sized base camp. Gorman's

move was only partially successful. "Goony" Wallace's move was a disaster. Elmer Pendleton was positioned okay, but they didn't go out his way. The 1st of the 2nd Infantry, when came in, was not well in hand. presided over this very gory and unsuccessful operation. The VC made monkeys of us. We had a cavalry troop that was in there. We had an APC sitting partly in the bunkers, and we had people in so close that when Paul and others brought in NAPALM, it burned the map right out of his hand. It was just a long day.
it
I

INTERVIEWER: Well, was, but the way actually unfolded the patrol got into the base camp and hollered for help. We got artillery for them right away and then proceeded to try to reinforce them. When my company got into the base camp mounted on a platoon from the 4th Cavalry, maybe even two platoons, we actually were in a different part of the base camp from where the patrol was at. But, we were in The VC weren't! They had run away to fight
it

it

it.

157

Close

air

support

was

frequently available to

A typical NAPALM strike.

support the ground forces.

somewhere

else
it.

when

they heard us

come

in.

So,

really,

we owned

the base
I

camp
left

then, or at

least pieces of

We couldn't find the patrol


camp, which
into a
I

but

we

had our piece of the camp.

two platoons
the 4th
realized

to hold on to the base that patrol.

thought to be a good idea, and

we

sailed along looking for

We

got

down

swamp and

got our tracks bogged down. That's

Platoon leader called up and said, "I'm the only


that the

man

left in

the platoon." That's

when when we

We then went back to the base camp and actually, we were in pretty and around our piece of the base camp. But, two things happened. First, from an overall perspective, which proves every point that you've ever tried to make about the things a company commander has to do in the middle of a big scrap, could only tend to first things first. was trying to coordinate a lot of things and was getting no help. The other problem was that the cavalry troop commander on the scene had flipped his lid. It was about his third big fight. didn't recognize it at the time, probably because of being so busy, but we could have gotten a lot more mileage out of those guys. Anyway, there were all kinds of people trying to help but because of all of them trying to talk on the radio at the same time, they were worse than no help at all. And, remember trying to talk to you, personally. thought could get through that way. wanted to tell my division commander that we were in contact with something big. We didn't know what it was, but it was big. And secondly, that we were okay and to go ahead and try the doughnut thing. Well, I'm happy to discover that you tried to do just that. have thought all along that these companies which kept coming in which was nice to see screwed up all of the fire support, and made a bit of a mess of it. While we're on the subject, one of the outcomes of the thing was the NAPALM strike which you referred to earlier. don't know if anyone ever told you what really happened, but watched that pod of NAPALM sail off of the airplane. Now, there was a large tree there and the pod hit that tree and instead of following the flight path of the plane
VC
had come back.

good

control of the

mess

in

did a 90 degree turn. That's

why

it

came across our

position.

158

GEN DEPUY:Totheleft?
INTERVIEWER:
the things that
I

It

burned the

map

right out of General,

then Colonel, Gorman's hands.

One

of

was always

very proud of

was

that

when

confronted, attacked might be a better

example of close air support, you sprang to the Air Force's defense. Now, I've been told that you actually accepted full responsibility for what happened. At the time, think people were throwing around numbers like 40 who were killed by the NAPALM. A reporter saw it happen and drew the inference that we had killed our own people
word, by the press over
this disasterous
I

with

NAPALM.

don't think

we

killed

anybody.

GEN DEPUY:

don't think so, either. Well, anyway, Spike

Force commander,

came up

with Westmoreland, and

Momyer, who was the Seventh Air met him back at the brigade CP. He said
1st Division.
all
I

that he wasn't going to drop


really couldn't live
I

with that.

any ordnance within 500 yards of the And, he said, "Well, I've been getting

told

him that

we

sorts of flack." Incidentally,


I
I

saw Spike Momyer two days ago and we talked about this incident. So, said, "What can do to help you?" He said, "Well, you've got to get the press off my back." So, went down the next night to Saigon, to what they called the 5:00 o'clock follies, and told all the reporters what had happened, and said that the Air Force dropped their bombs and NAPALM exactly where we had asked them to. If anybody got hurt as a result of that, then we took full responsibility for it. wanted them all to know that and to get off the Air Force's back. told them that if they wanted to get on anybody's back, then to get on ours. So, did that, and that kept the Air Force more or less
I I I
I

happy with the 1st Division.

INTERVIEWER: Another outcome

of that fight

was

that

two

or three prisoners

were captured.

understand that one of them talked and that based on


the habits of the Phu Loi Battalion.
I

his information

you were able to determine


this orchestration of

can remember that you talked on

harrassment and interdiction


rather give

fires

over a period of months, that you were building into a

crescendo so that you could drive the Phu Loi Battalion to the point where they would much

up the war than to carry on.


Well, actually, Paul

wonder

if

you would comment on that?


the maestro.

GEN

DEPUY:

Gorman was

Battalion's roster over by the


village of

Song Be

River, right after that

We did pick up the near battle. We found


it

Phu
the

Loi
little

was marked up with various and sundry pieces of information. It actually contained the wounded and killed on it, and so on. Paul Gorman, who became the G-3 after that battle, was the man who took it on as a personal project with my full and enthusiastic approval to round up the Phu Loi Battalion. He was the brains behind all of that. He was working an agent or two who were supposedly talking to the commander, who was reported to be a great big fellow. Several times Paul thought that the battalion was about to
that plantation house.

Phuoc Vinh, near

The

roster

defect because of the

artillery fire

and the general conditions

in

the area. But, they never did. So,


still

maybe they were smarter than we were. We're back here and

they're

over there.

INTERVIEWER:

Just a couple of short questions.

First,

going back to your


II,

earlier

statements

who actually did the fighting in World War would you make that same analysis about Vietnam? Was the percentage about the same, or was better?
about the percentage of people
it

159

GEN DEPUY:

It

was

better but

don't

know the

percentages.

I'd

be

willing to

say that one of the

reasons it was better was because the leadership mixture was higher. We had better company commanders and better sergeants in the earlier part of the war. As said, don't know what the percentage was but my guess is that 50 percent would be very, very good. I'd say that 50 percent would be high. hope they got up to that. "Slam" Marshall measured it in Korea. think that in World War II, it was 25 percent, and in Korea "Slam" thought that it got up to 40 or 50 percent.*
I

INTERVIEWER: know that he told the story about soldiers who didn't fire their rifles but just got down in the holes, and about soldiers who occasionally threw grenades but didn't pull the pins.
I

GEN DEPUY:
over half of the

Well, even

in

the best airborne battalion that went across the Carentan Causeway,

men

never fired a round.


there any difficulties or experiences that you had as a division

INTERVIEWER: Were
that

commander

came as

a surprise? In other

words, were there things that you didn't

really

expect might

happen

but, in fact, did?

GEN DEPUY: was


I

not surprised at the high proficiency of the VC and the NVA, because during my two years as J-3 down at MACV, had already formed a very good opinion of them. guess my biggest surprise, and this was a surprise in which have lots of company, was that the North
I I

Vietnamese and the Viet Cong would continue the war despite the punishment they were taking. guess should have expected that. guess should have studied human nature and the history of Vietnam and of revolutions and should have known it, but didn't. really thought that the kind of pressure they were under would cause them to perhaps knock off the war for awhile, as a minimum, or even give up and go back north. understand that from 1965 to '69 they lost over 600,000 men. But, was completely wrong on that. That was a surprise. guess was surprised a little bit, too, after took over the division, about the difficulty we had thought we were going to hit. They were more in finding the VC. We hit more dry holes than elusive than had expected. They controlled the battle better. They were the ones who usually decided whether or not there would be a fight. They were going to attack Soui Da. They were going to attack Loc Ninh. They were going to attack An Loc. By the way, these were campaign plans, not battle plans. We got around somehow and engaged them, but they could have said no
I
I

any point. think when the American Army looked for them during much of Abe's tour there, and didn't find them, again, they were making all the decisions. That is inherent in such a war. The enemy was smart. He wanted to win, not lose battles. He rarely charged into our killing zones. If he didn't like the odds he withdrew into Cambodia or otherwise evaded us.
at
I

INTERVIEWER: General Marshall, S.L.A. time, how much longer we had to win the
terms of our staying power.

Marshall, quotes you as asking him about this

same
in

war. That indicates to

me

that

you saw a problem

*For a discussion concerning the percentage of infantrymen firing their personal weapons in Korea, see S.L.A. Marshall, "Commentary on Infantry Operations and Weapons Usage in Korea," Operations Research Office Report, 0R0-R13: Project DOUGHBOY (Chevy Chase: The John Hopkins University, 1951).

160

GEN DEPUY:

Well,

did.

was very worried about our staying power.

didn't think the


I

American
in

people would put up with the war for very long, given television, and given what
the press from the United States. But, the big surprise
to avoid

was reading

was that the VC and N VA were simply able enough direct confrontations that they were able to survive. They metered out their casualties, and when the casualties were getting too high, as for example in 1966 and '67, and then again, during and after TET, they simply backed off and waited. They came back later, under circumstances in which they could afford to sustain more casualties. Now, wish that we had all been smart enough to say in 1965, when we went in, "That's what they are going to do to us." If we had been that smart then maybe we wouldn't have gone in. We did intervene on behalf of a very weak and dubious regime, albeit one better than communism. Still, it was very dubious in terms of political weight and meaning. But, don't remember anybody saying that, do you? Not even the experts, the scholastics, or the academics said that. Oh, there was one who did, Francois
I
I

Sully,

who

French.

now dead. Now, the reason he did is because he had been through before with the He told me and he told others. He said, "You're never going to win it. You're not going to
is
it

be able to find them. You're going to thrash around and you're only going to fight the battles that

He wasn't right in every detail, but he was right in net and sum. What we also didn't anticipate was the massive intervention of the North Vietnamese Army. In 1965 who would have thought that the North Vietnamese would have 23 divisions in South Vietnam by 1975? They even replaced the casualties in VC units at the local level.
they win." Well, he wasn't quite
right.

INTERVIEWER: Sir Robert Thompson said that we came so close to winning that it's really we didn't. When we pulled out, had we just continued to supply the South Vietnamese at a tolerable rate then they would have maintained the struggle, but we didn't. So,
amazing that
they no longer had the
to using.*
artillery

or

lift

capability necessary.

They

didn't

have the mobility and

firepower advantages that they had not only learned to use, but that they had grown accustomed

GEN DEPUY: Well, you have to have mobility and firepower in a war like that. In other words, if you want to go back and fight it like the French did, you can, but you will lose. So, we pulled the wherewithal out from under them. Whether they could have done it all alone, even with the resources, just don't know. But, they certainly never had a fair try once we pulled out our tactical
I

support.

INTERVIEWER: Supposing we had


massive supplies, the
village level

kept the Vietnamese

Army

in

the

ball
if

game
if

with

all

these

battlefield

was

just part of their challenge.


really

Now,

they got well from the

on up

in

terms of a government that


if

was

a government,

and

the

Army

could

keep on winning, and

the

VC

continued coming out where the

ARVN

could get at them, then

perhaps the government could have won.

GEN DEPUY:
made
it

Well, I'm not sure.


if

alone, even

we had

left

The reason hesitate to say that the Vietnamese could have them with about the same mixture the helicopters, aircraft,
I

*Sir Robert

Thompson, "The Vietnam War" (Lecture presented

at the

US Army War

College, Carlisle Barracks,

Pennsylvania, 21 September 1978).

161

and artillery is because of the number of divisions that the North Vietnamese eventually committed. think it exceeded the elastic limits of the South Vietnamese. But, we did make a terrible mistake when we cut the legs off from under them. In the larger context think the only to establish way the war could have been won was a defensive line from the South China Sea to the Mekong along Route 9 and physically prevent the North Vietnamese from infiltrating supplies and units to the south. General Westmoreland proposed such a scheme in 1965 and 1966, but he was turned down.
I

INTERVIEWER:

Continuing on with

some more questions on Vietnam, what

is

your appraisal of

the body count as a measure of success?*

gruesome way of accounting, but there didn't seem to be any other way to keep track of the progress being made. On the one hand, the intelligence people tried to estimate the size of the enemy force at all levels, from regular or main forces, down through guerrillas. Then they subtracted from that the so-called body count and "Chieu Hois." believe that problems arose with the body count in certain units. You may recall that the Rhodesians deal in body count. Even in Ireland, the British keep track of it. think it's inevitable that people will do that. Now, if units compete for body count, and they inflate them, then that's a corruption of the system. So, think it's inevitable that there will be some kind of counting of enemy casualties, and that automatically brings you into an area of potential abuse.
It is

GEN DEPUY:

INTERVIEWER:
Division?

Did you have confidence

in

the accuracy of the body count reporting of the 1st

GEN DEPUY:
When was
I

Well, not really.


it

think that General Talbott improved

it

later

by being very precise.


I

there

really

wasn't too

much
it

of an issue. Really, the fad hadn't started, and


I

think

that our
in
it.

body count reports were very general estimates.


I

suppose there was some

inflation factor

At the time, however,

didn't think

was very

important.

INTERVIEWER:

Did you use the statistics to compare units?

GEN DEPUY:

No,

did not.

add that that's the way it was perceived down at the battalion level. We were never bugged about body count. Sir, please share with us the prerequisites that you used when you assessed someone's potential to be a battalion or brigade commander?

INTERVIEWER:

I'd like

to

GEN DEPUY:

Well,

think the

first

requirement of a battalion or brigade commander, as well as a


is

company commander
*This

or a division

commander,

attention to detail;

knowing weapons; knowing

is

the third interview conducted with General DePuy,

1979, at his

home

in

Highfield, Virginia.

USA Retired. This interview was conducted on 23 April The interviewers were Lieutenant Colonels William J. Mullen and Romie L.

Brownlee.

162

tactics; studying the

type

it

may

be,

enemy; being practical; and having a good firm grip on the and at whatever level, from division all the way down to company.
In

unit,

whatever

INTERVIEWER:
constraints

your management of the war as a division commander, were you under any

imposed
in

by

the

Commander,

US

Military

Assistance

Command,

Vietnam

(COMUSMACV),

terms of holding

down

friendly casualties?

GEN DEPUY:
was from the

No, not from General Westmoreland. The only pressure

ever had on casualties


of the casualties

Chief of Staff, Harold K. Johnson,


in
I

who came

out and was

critical

Phuoc Tuy Province.* agreed with him that it was most unfortunate. But, it in war that was unavoidable if you are going to be aggressive. That balance between aggressiveness and casualties is the agonizing role faced by any commander, whether he is a company commander or a division commander. He must be judged on the longterm averages, think, rather than on any one little episode. With respect to General Johnson, you must understand that he was devoted to the concept of pacification. He liked what he saw in the 25th Division under Fred Weyand. You will recall that the 25th Division was deployed between the Saigon River, which was our southern boundary, and the Oriental River, which came into Saigon from the Parrot's Beak. This area was heavily populated. Weyand was correct in his emphasis on pacification and security. On
suffered

we had

was one of those episodes

the other hand, the 1st Division

was

a jungle division. Except for an area


little

around Di An, south of

the

line, Lai

Khe

Phuoc Vinh, we had very


all

an enormous operating area which included

of

Cambodian border on the west and north, as far of the 25th Division's AO. regarded it as my job, my mission, to keep the 9th VC Division back in the jungle to engage it continuously, to destroy it if possible, and to keep it out of the populated areas. While commanded the 1st Division we succeeded in that mission completely. The 9th VC Division never penetrated into the populated area during 1966 or early 1967. By the way, this was the tactical purpose of "Search and Destroy" operations.
I I

what we had was went all the way to the east as Song Be. Our AO was ten times the size
civilian

population. Instead, D, and

War Zones C and

INTERVIEWER:

Later on

in

the war, a major activitiy of the friendly forces

in

Vietnam was

pacification. Earlier in the history of the

my

Vietnamese conflict, before the Americans came in, it is understanding that pacification was getting cranked up, but when Diem fell, and a series of
influx of the

coups came along, followed by the

Americans, the country's pacification effort

became second in importance to the bigger war. During the time of the buildup, when you were commanding the 1st Division, the division had its own pacification effort. Please describe that
effort in

terms of the guidance that you were given, the objectives that you were trying to reach,

and perhaps, some of the people

who were

involved?**

World War

*General Harold K. Johnson, deceased, was commissioned a second lieutenant in the Infantry, in 1933. Prior to II, General Johnson served with the 57th Infantry, Philippine Scouts. Captured at fall of Bataan in 1942, he participated in the Bataan death march and was imprisoned until 1945. During the Korean conflict, General Johnson commanded the 5th Cavalry and the 8th Cavalry Regiments, 1st Cavalry Division. Subsequent assignments included duty as Commandant, Command and General Staff College (1960-63); Deputy Chief of Staff for Military Operations
(1963-64);

and Chief of Staff of the Army (1964-68).


in

**For an overview of pacification efforts

Vietnam, see Tran Dinh Tho, Pacification (Washington:

USGPO,

1979).

163

GEN DEPUY:
Cong
force

Let

me answer the
in
its

earlier part of

your question.

When Diem was


no
units in

involved

in

what

they called the Strategic Hamlet Program, strongly supported by the US, the growth of the Viet

was

still

infancy, and the North Vietnamese had

South Vietnam.
districts.

Therefore, the focus of the battle


largest

was down

in

the villages, the hamlets and the

The

were found at the provincial level, although the beginnings of some main force units appeared in War Zones C and D. Then, when Diem was overthrown, the government became disorganized and relatively less effective. The Strategic Hamlet Program was thought to have been a failure, and the emphasis swung to the ARVN, not because someone decided to drop pacification and go to big units but because the opposition organized regiments and divisions and began to beat the hell out of the ARVN. That's why we intervened with US troops. There is a lot of rubbish available on this subject, so beware! For a period from the end of 1964 until 1967, maybe even beyond that, the emphasis was clearly on main forces ours and theirs. Then, our government, the Central Intelligence Agency (CIA), the Agency for International Development (AID), the Civil Operations and Revolutionary Development Support (CORDS) organization, and the government of Vietnam began to get better organized and were once again able to address pacification. Once again, pacification began to take on an added importance and a larger role. Within the 1st Division area we were in an area that was less populated than were the areas where the divisions in the Delta, or around Saigon, or the 25th Division, or the divisions up in the northern coastal area such as the Americal were located. You will recall that our AO included a lot of jungle and little population; nonetheless, we did recognize that success eventually would depend on the quality of the ARVN, and in our case, on the 5th Division, on the provincial regional forces, on the district and village level, on the popular forces, and on all of the programs that were then being supported. So, in order to work with the Vietnamese, we established an organization under Colonel Bobby Schweitzer, called HELPER the name itself indicating the purpose. This was a way, we hoped, by which we would be able to work with all of those echelons of the Vietnamese, and in return, we could obtain intelligence from them. In that way we would be more effective in supporting them at every level supporting them with military operations, supporting them with civic action, and in supporting their medical, construction, and propaganda efforts, and so on. And, in the case of Colonel Schweitzer, we had the perfect man. He spoke Vietnamese, was the bravest man ever met, was a man of enormous initiative and energy, was wounded a number of times, and had the confidence of the Vietnamese at every level to the extent that they would assign forces to him at his request without his even telling them what he was going to use them for. And, there would be no intelligence leaks of any kind. So, whatever success we had, and think the HELPER Organization had many, in strengthening the Vietnamese and in attacking the enemy's so-called infrastructure, can be credited primarily to Colonel Schweitzer and his men.*
units really
I I

VC

INTERVIEWER: The HELPER Program then, was the result of your own assessment of what was needed as opposed to something that you were directed to do in your area of operations?
*Lieutenant General Robert L. Schweitzer, USA Retired, was commissioned a second lieutenant in the Infantry in 1953. Subsequently, he transferred into the Armor branch. His assignments have included duty as Commander, 11th Armored Cavalry Regiment (1973-74); Director, Office of Defense Policy, National Security Council (1981); and Chairman, Inter-American Defense Board (1983-1986).

164

GEN DEPUY:
created, there

Yes.

We

weren't directed to do that. After Komer arrived and


of the Vietnamese.*

CORDS was
it,

was more emphasis on support

As

understand

under

General Talbott the 1st Division had the principle mission of supporting the Vietnamese, or
assisting in "Vietnamization" as Secretary Laird called
it.

During

any way to do those things, but

it

just

seemed the necessary

my time, we were not directed in thing to do. My guess is that there

was never another Schweitzer.

INTERVIEWER: With regard to Vietnam, the press have been praised or vilified, depending on who you talk to, but there is no question about the fact they had an enormous impact on the outcome of the war. We'd like very much for you to comment on the reporters that you came in
contact with and your feelings as to their objectivity, their expertise, their knowledge of the
subject on which they were reporting, and so forth.

GEN DEPUY:
fine.
I

Well,

think the reporters over there


I

who worked

with the combat troops were

liked

them, and

thought they were


I

fair

reporters have ever been.

am

thinking about Arnett, Pappas and the

enough, and very brave, and as good as combat like. think the problem was
I

not with the reporters so

much

as

it

which may not hold water, but it even as early as 1962, '63, or '64, which resulted
this included a lot of

was with the editors back in the United seems to me that something happened
in

States.

have a theory
on,

fairly early

maybe

the intellectual

elements of our society

and

the editors, television correspondents, and even

some

of the reporters

somehow
early

getting the impression that social justice

was on the

side of the

enemy. This happened


I

on and then was repeated again later, with the American public. In other words, see it as two waves. The first wave was amongst the reporters and the intellectuals coming to the conclusion that somehow or another we were guilty of some form of political aggression and were being heavyhanded about it. Conversely, there was a love affair with the idea of the brave freedom fighter in black pajamas making monkeys out of the establishment. Then, that whole thing was repeated when American troops went over. When the American troops first went over, the American people, the man on the street, was told that there was a communist menace, and that we were going over to cope with it. Therefore, at that time, the enemy was the problem. The enemy was evil. Then, through the bombardment of television and articles written by a lot of the intellectuals who had already been through this process earlier with the ARVN, it seems to me that the average American got to the point where he wondered on which side lay the purity of social justice. Now that we know about the aims and activities of the North Vietnamese and their direction of the
effort

from the very beginning,

all

of this

was nonsense.

INTERVIEWER: About the 1st Division scholarship fund, which was set up for the children of soldiers and officers who were killed in action and became a hallmark of the division, wonder if
I

*Robert W. Komer served in the Directorate of Intelligence and Office of National Estimates, Central Intelligence Agency, during the period 1947 through 1960. Subsequently, Ambassador Komer served as the Senior Staff Member, National Security Council (1961-65), and as Special Assistant to the President (1966-67). Following the completion of his tour as head of CORDS in 1968, he served as the Ambassador to Turkey (1968-69); Advisor to the Secretary of Defense for NATO Affairs (1977-79); and as Undersecretary of Defense for Policy (1979-81).

165

you would discuss that both

in

terms of being the commanding general when

it

was

started,

and

then, later on, as the president of the society.

GEN DEPUY:
may

Well, for the record, the Scholarship

Fund started

in

a rather interesting

way. You

recall that there was a sergeant named Nunez, who was a member of the division's Long Range Patrol Company. They went into a jungle area up on the edge of War Zone C, south of what we called the "Red Barn." It was an area in which there was a large base camp used from time to time by one of the regiments in the 9th Division, and during this particular patrol one of the regiments was there. don't remember which one, think it was the 273rd. But, in any event, the patrol ran into a real hornet's nest, and Sergeant Nunez was killed. We put some more troops in there in order to get his body back because there was a point of honor not to leave any of the 1st Division's dead in the hands of the enemy. So, we did that. In fact, we had a substantial fight in the area. Not long after that received a letter from Mrs. Nunez telling me how much her husband had loved the 1st Division, and what a great soldier, husband and father he had been, and that she hoped that her small sons would grow up in his image. She said it much better than that, but that was the message. Well, it was a very touching letter, so published it in the American Traveler, which is the 1st Division's newspaper, with the suggestion that perhaps some of us ought to pitch in some money to take care of Sergeant Nunez's sons and others like him. Well, the morning following publication of the newspaper found on my bunk a letter with quite a lot of money in it. I've forgotten how much, but several hundred dollars, and a little note that just said, "From some anonymous artillerymen." learned later that Colonel, later Brigadier General, Camp, Marlin the DIVARTY commander, had been the ringleader behind it. That was sufficiently encouraging, so we started a fund and began to collect money by any and all means, some fun and some more formal than that. But, in any event, the division commanders who followed me, particularly General Talbott, really did a tremendous job, and the fund eventually rose to about
I I I I

Major General DePuy presenting


a 1st Infantry Division

Eric Nunez, son of Sergeant Rudolph A. Nunez, holds his

scholarship to Richard

Fieller,
Fieller.

scholarship certificate.

son of Sergeant Richard B.

166

$900,000. Right

now

it's

almost that. Over a thousand scholarships have been awarded at $2,500


a very healthy condition.

each, and the fund

is in

Our worry now concerns the number


point
in

of

young
million

orphans

who

will, in fact,

use the money. At

some

time we're going to have to increase


will

the size of the scholarship because of inflation. By 1990


dollars for

we

have provided well over a

about 1000 scholarships.


Please

INTERVIEWER:

comment,

if

you would, on the selection of Sergeant Major Woolridge to


he your sergeant major?

be the Sergeant Major of the Army.

Was
I

GEN DEPUY:
inkling that

Yes, he was. But, have to tell you that at the time didn't have the slightest Woolridge was involved with a number of fellow sergeants in the division in ripping off
I

the various club funds. Woolridge, you the 26th Infantry,


I

may know, was

quite a soldier.

In

World War

II

he was

in

believe it was "K" Company, and his squad leader was Sergeant Major Dobol. Another squad member was Sergeant Major Cannon. Another squad member was Sergeant

Major Joe Venable,

who was

killed

with General Ware. So,

in

one squad of the 26th

Infantry

were
in

three future sergeants major of the 1st Division, Dobol, the

first

Command

Sergeant Major

the

whole Army and Woolridge, the first Sergeant Major of the Army. Dobol spent 26 years in the 26th Infantry. Now, Woolridge was a fighter. He was big man; he was tough; and he was brave. like to think that he was taken in by slicker parties, but that in no way relieves him of responsibility for what he did. was sufficiently impressed with him as the sergeant major of the division, that recommended him to be the first Sergeant Major of the Army, and he was selected. And then, only later, did it develop that he was involved in all of these things, which was a great tragedy and an occasion, might say, of great sadness on my part, because did like him very much. And, it's been very painful for me ever since; I'm sure it's been more painful for him.
I I I I
I

Major General DePuy and John H. Hay at General DePuy's change of command ceremony.

Major General DePuy departing the Republic


of

South Vietnam.

167

CHAPTER
Washington
1967
-

VIM

Transition:

1972

INTERVIEWER:
Defense.

After your tour as

commander

of the 1st Infantry Division,

you returned to the

United States and

became the
appreciate
it

Special Assistant for Counterinsurgency to the Secretary of


if

you would comment on what your duties and responsibilities were, and any recollections that you have concerning significant activities during that time period.

We would

GEN DEPUY:

Well, the Special Assistant for Counterinsurgency

was

member

of the Office of

the Joint Chiefs of Staff, so

bosses were the Chairman of the Joint Chiefs of Staff and the Director of the Joint Staff. That office was started back in the Kennedy Administration when
stylish.

my

counterinsurgency was

Marine major general


interesting,

named "Brute"

Krulak

was

the

and fascinating man. After being the and went into the newspaper business. He's a very fine, intellectually outstanding man. But, those were the days when the Special Assistant for Counterinsurgency Special Activities (SACSA), was involved in trying to figure out how the military services could do guerrilla warfare, psychological warfare, escape and invasion, and civic action around the world, and special operations the sponsorship for special operations in North Vietnam, was vested in the SACSA. However, when came back from Vietnam, General Earle Wheeler requested that serve as the SACSA. The nature of the job changed considerably because became, in fact, the assistant to the Chairman for Vietnam, in a much broader context than just counterinsurgency or special operations. became an assistant across the board, minus the air war. The air war was the province of the Joint Staff's J-3. For example, when General Wheeler went to Vietnam on that very famous trip right after TET, went with him as the only
incumbent.
a

He was

very articulate,

commander

of the Marine Corps, Pacific, he retired

member
Also,
I

of the Joint Staff.*

became

member

of a very interesting interdepartmental group

which met frequently


time.

at

the State Department. The Assistant Secretary of State for the Far East at that time

Bundy and

his principal

deputy was

Phil

Habib,

whom

had known

for

some

was William The member

from International Security Affairs (ISA), was a very


recently has

fine

man named

Dick Stedman,

who more

Carver. So,

in this

been on a commission to recognize the Joint Staff. The CIA member was George group we had both the civil and military side of the Pentagon represented as

General Victor H. Krulak, USMC Retired, was commissioned a second lieutenant in 1934. During World General Krulak commanded the 2nd Parachute Battalion, 1st Marine Amphibious Corps, in the Pacific Theater of Operations. During the Korean conflict, he served as the Chief of Staff, 1st Marine Division. Subsequent assignments included duty as the Commanding General, Marine Corps Recruit Depot (1959-62); and Commanding General, Fleet Marine Force, Pacific (1964-68). General Earle G. Wheeler, deceased, was commissioned a second lieutenant in the Infantry in 1932. During World War II, General Wheeler served in the 63rd Infantry Division in the European Theater of Operations. Subsequent assignments included duty as the Commander, 351st Infantry Regiment (1951-52); Commanding General, 2nd Armored Division (1958-59); Commanding General, III Corps (1959-60); Chief of Staff of the Army (1962-64); and Chairman, Joint Chiefs of Staff (1964-68).
* Lieutenant
II,

War

168

well as the State

Department and the CIA. We also had a member from the White House, Bill Jordan, who is now an ambassador. We met at least once a week on interdepartmental policy represented the Chairman in those meetings. represented him issues concerning Vietnam. personally, and ex officio, the Joint Staff. Although not formally acknowledged, this group tried
I
I

to help their principals in preparing for the Tuesday luncheons with the President whose attendees were the equivalent of the War Cabinet. That was a rather unusual arrangement, one not written into the charter of the Joint Staff or SACSA. While was doing that also supervised the writing of the Westmoreland report, that first report which was really joint by the Commander in Chief, Pacific (CINCPAC), Admiral U.S. Grant Sharp, and Westmoreland. You may recall that it was a chronology, a very factual, straightforward kind of chronology. recruited some people like John Seigle and others, to help with that.* guess the most noteworthy thing that happened during my tour was going to Vietnam with Wheeler just after TET, during which the very controversial question arose as to whether or not General Westmoreland had asked for 206,000 additional troops, and whether TET had been a victory or a defeat. wrote the report for General Wheeler. Incidentally, as an aside, that is one of the reports that was featured in the Pentagon Papers case because Daniel Ellsberg leaked that report, together with the Pentagon Papers. That brought General Gorman and me into the Pentagon Papers trial in Los Angeles. When we came back from our post-TET visit to Vietnam, the President convened a group including General Ridgway, General Taylor, Abe Fortas, Clark Clifford, George Ball, and others. They were given briefings by Habib, Carver and myself as to what happened during TET. They met with the President the following day, and reported to the President that the war appeared to be lost. Well, in my opinion, they had already decided that before they ever came to Washington. They seized upon those parts of the briefing which supported their view and paid very little
I I I I I

must say that the briefings were not encouraging at that time. And, perhaps those of us who gave the briefings were suffering a little bit from the Washington point of view, as opposed to the field point of view, despite the fact that some of us had just been out there.** Walt Rostow, who was the President's National Security advisor, was astounded by this, and the President was furious, and demanded to know who it was who had "poisoned the well?" He was told that there were three people who had poisoned the well Habib, Carver, and DePuy. So, he said that he wanted to talk to these three fellows to determine just what it was that they had said. We went to the White House about two days later, in the afternoon, and Carver and gave the President the same briefing. Habib had wisely left town. The President, it seemed to me, wasn't paying any attention to us; he was making and taking telephone calls. They were taking
attention to the other parts.

However,

in

*William C. Westmoreland, "Report on Operations in South Vietnam: January 1964-June 1968." Report Vietnam (as of 30 June 1968) (Washington: USGPO, 1969), 68-347.

On

the

War

**Extracts of General Wheeler's 27 February 1968, "Report of Chairman, J.C.S., on Situation in Vietnam and Requirements," are contained in Mike Gravel, The Pentagon Papers: The Defense Department History of United States Decisionmaking in Vietnam, Vol. IV (Boston: Deacon Press, 1975), 546-549, and The New York Times, The

MACV

Pentagon Papers (New York: Bantam Books,

Inc., 1971),

615-621.

169

pictures. Patrick Nugent, who was President Johnson's grandson, was running around the room, and the President would pick him up from time to time and put him on his knee and give him a drink out of a Coke bottle from which the President was drinking. All in all, it was a very disorderly, disconcerting episode almost amusing in a comical sort of way if it hadn't been so important. When we were all finished, the President sort of waved us out of the room by saying, "Well, don't see anything wrong with what you told them." He didn't go on to say, guess, what was implicit, which was that maybe the briefing wasn't the problem maybe we hadn't really "poisoned the well." But, just two days later, the President announced that he would not seek reelection. guess he had made that decision before we briefed him, which may explain his
I
I I

relative lack of interest.

do with perceptions of the war. Well, it was rather shocking to return to Washington and see what the perceptions were. And, there's no doubt that the perception in Washington was a gloomy one, one that pervaded all of the agencies of the government and the press. TET had been a terrible blow to Washington. As said earlier, it seemed as though people in Washington not in the government, but in the press felt that somehow or other, we were the aggressors. We were the evil ones; we were the clumsy ones; and we were the ones who used the big bombs, whereas the other side used persuasion and intellectual means. Therefore, we certainly were bound to lose, and probably ought to lose! That was the impression that had during 1968, 1969, and 1970. Now, don't forget that there were riots and burnings in Washington at that time. Of course, we now know that TET was a military victory for us and represented the virtual demise of the VC. We also know that the North Vietnamese Army was deployed to the south to win the war which could not have been won by the VC alone. However, that was by no means understood in Washington at that time. General Westmoreland tried to tell anyone who would listen that TET was a victory but no one would listen to him. His credibility was destroyed by TET and only history and time will correct that.
to
I I

You asked another question which had

INTERVIEWER: How was your job as the Special Assistant to the Chairman related to the other job you had when you were in the counterinsurgency business as an Army officer? It sounds like you were doing for the Army what you later did for the Joint Staff.

GEN DEPUY:

Not

really. In

1963 and

'64,

was

involved strictly

in

the emerging organization and

procedures for counterinsurgency. With Wheeler as the Chairman of the Joint Chiefs, the scope
included the whole war.

INTERVIEWER:
Staff, but

In

terms of organization, the Chairman of the Joint Chiefs has that whole Joint
It

he doesn't have an independent brain trust working for him and feeding him advice.
really

appears that he often goes into issues meetings, or goes into see the President, or to the National
Security Council (NSC), and
is

relying

on

his

assessment which he has gained through sitting with body, or that he has picked up through his control of the Joint
people

own assessment of the the chiefs as a member of


Staff. But,

situation,

an

the corporate

he doesn't
Staff,

who

are dedicated to him, the

Chairman of the Joint Chiefs of

have feeding him


really

information, and helping him

make

an appraisal independent from that of the corporate body, the

170

sounds like your organization gave him that capability. You were his "in-house" experts on the Vietnam War, and he was getting something separate from what might be coming to him from the Chief of Staff of the Army, or the Chief of Naval Operations.
Chiefs of Staff.
It

GEN DEPUY:

Well, that's a distorted picture.

Staff at the disposal.

Remember, the Chairman has the entire Joint The J-3 and the J-5 both supported him massively and continuously. Also,

the Chairman has a special group which normally consists of a colonel from each of the

and he also has a lieutenant general assistant. At one time General Goodpaster was that assistant, and at another time George Brown was. He later became Chairman. But, among other things, the Chairman's Special Group was also designed to do just what you are talking about. Now, in the case of Vietnam, they were colonels, and worked with them all the time. was a major general, I'd been in Vietnam, and had been a division commander, so had some
services
I
I

credibility.

The rest of what you say is right. The information he got from the services was of value, but it was different. General Wheeler played an enormously important role. You know, he was Chairman for over four years, and he was very close to the President. The President had confidence in him. He was the only uniformed participant in the "Tuesday Lunch," which
included the Secretary of State, the Secretary of Defense, the Chairman, the Director of CIA,

some

White House Staff, and Walt Rostow. That was the "War Cabinet", and at those Tuesday luncheons decisions were made. General Wheeler was very much a part of that, and he was also the communications link to the War Cabinet for the JCS and the command in Vietnam, although, of course, the CIA had its own sources of information, as did Rostow and the Department of State. Everybody had a line into Vietnam for intelligence. But, the military
of the
intelligence

was provided through Wheeler.


Sir,

from 1969 to 1973, you served on the Army Staff as the Assistant Vice Chief of Staff (A/VICE). What did you work on during that time period? What were the major issues, the highlights during your tour, and what do you consider to have been your main

INTERVIEWER:

accomplishments while you were there?

GEN DEPUY:
Army
Materiel
I

Well,

became the A/VICE

in

1969, replacing General Chesarek

who went

to the

Command (AMC). Let me say a word about why there was an A/VICE, and would like to refer you to an interview with Colonel, now General, Dave Doyle on the functions and background of the A/VICE. There is a very interesting genesis of the A/VICE. It started with Mr. McNamara. When McNamara came into the Pentagon, he brought with him people like Charley Hitch from the University of California, and Alain Enthoven of systems analysis fame. These people brought with them the McNamara Management System, which was the fiveyear defense program, and the system of making changes to that program, and studies as to what those changes should be, and whether or not the changes were going to be cost-effective. All of this caused a revolution in the Pentagon. All of the services were found wanting by Mr. McNamara. All of the services had something like the old General Staff concept where a lieutenant colonel would be assigned to make a study on a subject. If his paper made literal sense,
incidentally,

171

they would adopt


the character of
all

it.

It

probably wasn't a quantified study, but a judgmental study, and that was

the services and certainly of the Army.*


in

Mr.

McNamara was

quality. After Mr.

not happy with the data he got from the Army, either in quantity, or Vance went up to become the Deputy, and Mr. Resor became the Secretary
a special information channel through the Secretary of the

of

the Army, they progressively established within the Office of the Chief of Staff, a small group of

people

who became

Army

to Mr.

McNamara.** This group consisted of some very interesting people like Dave Parker, a fine officer and an engineer major general, now retired, who was the Governor of the Panama Canal Zone during his last assignment. Sam Walker worked in there at one time. Paul Phillips went up and worked there. A fellow named Stockfisch from up in Defense also worked there. Eventually, under Chesarek, this function emerged as the office of the Assistant Vice Chief of Staff. It was comprised of a program shop like the one Max Thurman now has, and his brother had before him, and Herb McChrystal, Jim Baldwin and Paul Phillips had before that. The Management Information Systems Directorate was started by Major General Hank Schrader, an engineer. Also, a special studies group was formed and was headed up at various times by Seigle, Menetrey, Bobby Montague, and "Tick" Bonesteel. Finally, and very importantly, it included a weapons systems analysis shop headed by Dick Trainor. It was a four-legged organization. The most important part was called the Force Planning and Analysis shop, but what it really became was the master program office for the Department of the Army.*** The Director of Management Information Systems tried to standardize and regulate both computer hardware and software for the Army's business systems. For the latter purpose we activated the Army's computer systems command which provided standardized management software for personnel, finance, and logistics.

'General DePuy's comment concerning Dave Doyle's interview refers to Lieutenant General David K. Doyle, then Lieutenant Colonel Doyle, Chief, Staff Management Division, Office of the Assistant Secretary of the General Staff. General Doyle conducted an "end of tour" taped interview with General DePuy concerning his service as the Assistant Vice Chief of Staff, in March 1973. Robert S. McNamara, a top executive with the Ford Motor Company for nearly 20 years, served as the Secretary of Defense during the period 1961-68. Subsequently, he served as president of the World Bank from 1968 to 1981. Charles J. Hitch, an economist and Rhodes Scholar, served as Assistant Secretary of Defense (Comptroller) during the period 1961-65. Alain C. Enthoven, also an economist and Rhodes Scholar, served as Deputy Assistant Secretary of Defense (Comptroller) during the period 1961-65, and as Assistant Secretary of Defense (Systems Analysis), during the period 1965-69. For a brief description of the McNamara Management System, see Robert S. McNamara, The Essence of Security: Reflections in Office (New York: Harper & Row, Publishers, 1968), 87-104. A much more complete explanation is contained in Samuel A. Tucker (ed.), A Modern Design for Defense Decision: A McNamara-Hitch-Enthoven Anthology (Washington: Industrial College of the Armed Forces: 1966).

**Cyrus R. Vance, a career lawyer, served as General Counsel for the Department of Defense during the period 1961which he served as the Secretary of the Army from 1962 to 1963. During the period 1964 to 1967, Mr. Vance served as the Deputy Secretary of Defense. Mr. Vance also served as the Secretary of State from 1977 to 1980. Stanley R. Resor, a corporate law specialist, first served as the Under Secretary of the Army in 1965 and then as the Secretary of State from 1965 to 1971. Mr. Resor also served as the US Representative to the Mutual and Balanced Force Reduction Talks (1973-78), and as the Under Secretary of Defense for Policy (1978-79).
62, after

***For a brief overview on the creation of the Assistant Vice Chief of Staff position, see Ferdinand Techniques for Managing Men and Materiel," Army, 17 (October, 1967), 51-52.

J.

Chesarek,

"New

172

The weapons systems group supported the Vice Chief in his role as chairman of the Army's System Acquisition Review Council. It gave him advice independent of the staff. It was, therefore,
thoroughly disliked.

The

interesting thing

is

that

when became
I I

the

A/ VICE, worked 80 percent


I I

of the time for the

and 20 percent for the Vice Chief, General Palmer, and the Chief, General Westmoreland. Four years later, was proud to be able to say that worked about 80 percent of the time for the Chief and the Vice Chief, mostly the Vice Chief, and 20 percent for the Secretary.
Secretary
In

other words, as the office gained stature and confidence, the Secretary

was

willing to put

back

into the "green-suit" part of the

house, through the A/VICE and the Vice Chief, the authority and
staff during the

responsibility

which had been taken away from the Army


in

McNamara regime and

for a long period thereafter.*


I

think that's a very important period

the history of the

Army

General Staff. The Secretary

was making the program


channel into the Army.
I

decisions for the Army, and

was

using the

A/VICE

as his instrument and


in

came out

of that assignment fairly well educated


I

the techniques of

program management, and to this day am an ardent and enthusiastic believer in program management as the way to go for any large organization. won't bore you with all of what that means, but it's the antithesis of budget management, and it's the opposite of General Staff
I

management

of the old kind.

A/VICE

STUDIES DIRECTORATE

FORCE PLANNING ANALYSIS DIRECTORATE*

MANAGEMENT
INFORMATION SYSTEMS DIRECTORATE

WEAPONS
SYSTEMS
ANALYSIS DIRECTORATE

Later

became

the Planning and Programming Analysis Directorate

*General Bruce Palmer,

Jr.,

USA

Retired,

ws commissioned

second lieutenant

in

the Cavalry

in

1936. Branch

transferring to the Infantry, General Palmer served as the Chief of Staff of the 6th Infantry Division

and

later

commanded

the 63rd Infantry Regiment in the Southwest Pacific Theater during World War II. Subsequent assignments included duty as the Chief of Staff, Eighth Army (1962-63); Commanding General XVIII Airborne Corps (1966-67); Commanding General, II Field Force, Vietnam (1967); Vice Chief of Staff of the Army (1968-73); and

Commander

in

Chief, Readiness

Command

(1973-74).

173

So, that sort of covers what the A/VICE did.

We did a

lot in

the automatic data processing


or

field,

and we did some

in

the studies

field.

For example,

OPMS,

more

specifically, selection for

command, was the brain child of that group. But, basically, through the program system, we managed the Army down from 1.6 million men to 800,000 in four years a traumatic period. Now, you suffered from all of those changes wherever you were at that time, and I'm sure that it seemed disorderly and hectic. On the other hand, what was going on was a demobilization. The Army was cut in half very rapidly, and yet, somehow it survived barely, but it survived. It
survived physically, and think it has now demonstrated that it has rebounded intellectually, and from a morale standpoint. But, it was a very difficult period from a management standpoint. Now, do you want to ask any subsidiary questions?
I

INTERVIEWER: You mentioned


One
of those

several of the studies that

mentioned

in

your papers was the

WHEELS

study.

went on while you were the A/ VICE. Would you please comment on

that?*

GEN DEPUY:

Well,

will

because the

WHEELS

study

was

a very unpopular thing.

It

was

part of

that process of bringing the

Army down from


of people,

1.6 million to 800,000

men

with a loss of

commensurate resources, not only


trying to adjust a large

which was obvious, but also of money.

We were

would fit a small Army. One of the things we went after was the number of wheeled vehicles in the Army. We discovered that there was one wheeled vehicle for every two soldiers in the active Army. That seemed to us to be unnecessarily high and also to be unnecessarily expensive. It also required a tremendous ordnance tail to maintain them. So, we went in and whacked out about 100,000 vehicles. That sounds like a lot, but that only brought us down from 460,000 to 360,000 for an Army of 800,000. And, mind you, in that Army of 800,000, 150,000 were students, transients, patients, and such. So, we still had one vehicle for every two soldiers in units and that included the Chief of Staff of the Army, every clerktypist, every sergeant major, and so on. Anyway, the WHEELS study was very unpopular with the people whose ox was gored. chaired the WHEELS study and my principal ally was Woody Vaughn, the deputy commander of AMC.

Army

into the clothing that

INTERVIEWER: At this
A/ VICE what was your

particular time a lot of

new equipment was


this

entering the inventory.

As the

role in the

procurement of
role in

equipment and materiel?

procurement as such. Procurement is a contractual arrangement involving the passing of money to contractors to buy things. But, my role as A/VICE was involved in the decision as to whether or not a particular weapon or piece of equipment would be put into the program or dropped from the program, or whether the size of the buy would be
I

GEN DEPUY:

didn't have

any

adjusted

in

order to

make

the program

fit

the total

amount

of

money we

had. There were

thousands of program decisions of that nature.

*For further details on the WHEELS Study, see Vehicles," dated 30 August 1972.

US Army

Materiel

Command

Report, "Special Analysis of

Wheeled

174

The decision-making process we used was


general

like this:

we had

a junior

group chaired by the major

it was Jim Baldwin, was Roy Thurman, and now it's Max Thurman. They headed a thing we called the "Prince George Riding Club" which was really the Program, Guidance and Review Committee (PGRC). They went over all of these program issues at the major general level. Then we formed a Select Committee or SELCOM, which chaired. It consisted of each of the lieutenant generals of the Army staff, the Deputy Chiefs of Staff for Operations (DCSOPS), Logistics (DCSLOG), Personnel (DCSPER), and so on. This really was where most of the final tough decisions had to be made. What we were confronted with constantly was what we

who was

the head of the Force Planning Analysis office. At one time

at another time

it

was Herb McChrystal, then

it

called

decrement exercises.
told that

In

other words,

we needed
billion,

a twenty-five billion dollar budget, but

were

we would
personnel.

only get twenty-three

could cut two


a reduction
in

billion dollars

out of the program.

We

had to find those places took some out of the structure, which meant
so

we

we where we

We

took

some
took

out of Operation and Maintenance (O&M), which meant

some out of depot maintenance, we took some out of research and development (R&D), we took some out of procurement, and we took some out of the Reserve components. Every decision was unpopular. There was a proponent for everything, and each proponent felt that the decisions taken were a mistake. As the chairman, tried to get and usually did get a consensus, at least on most of the
that
lost

we

some

readiness,

we

tough decisions.

When couldn't, carried it to the Vice Chief of Staff, and the Vice Chief, based on our recommendations, would simply make the decision. Now, another thing that did when we
I I
I

were

in

a terrible hurry in the last hectic

days of the program cycle, or the budget cycle, was


sit

simply

call in

the budget and program directors of the staff, and we'd

up

in

my

office

all

night

long and

make hundreds

of relatively minor but always controversial decisions


It

take this out,

was very arbitrary, but it had to be! At the time such actions were regarded as high-handed by many people, which led to a certain dissatisfaction with the A/VICE idea on the part of the regular staff agencies. But, it was a way to make the necessary, tough decisions rapidly during a very difficult management period. You mentioned the "Gama Goat," with regard to whether or not was involved in saying, "Go ahead with it." may have been; probably was. also was probably involved in saying go ahead with the M60A2, and with
subtract that, reduce this, scratch that out.
I
I I I

the Sheridan deployment to Europe,

can say

all three of which have been maintenance nightmares. All were three decisions out of 10,000 decisions that we made. They may have been mistakes, but you make lots of mistakes. think if your batting average is anywhere near 80
I

is

that those

percent, then you're probably doing very, very well, indeed.

was during this time period when the thinking began concerning the reorganization of the Army which eventually resulted in the creation of the Training and Doctrine Command (TRADOC) and the Forces Command (FORSCOM). Could you tell us how that started
It

INTERVIEWER:

and about your involvement

in it?

GEN DEPUY:

The reason became involved in the reorganization of the Continental Army Command (CONARC), which was the instrument by which TRADOC was born, was during this reduction of the Army, the cutting of the Army in half, we had difficulties with the management of
Yes.
I

175

M551 Armored Reconnaissance


Assault Vehicle

- SHERIDAN

M561

/4-ton

Gama Goat

176

CONARC. To
was
in

put

it

in

the simplest form,


It

CONARC was
in

budget-managed command, not


level.

program-oriented

command.

was

decade behind

management techniques. Management


Not only
that, but

between CONARC and the various operating elements, such as the divisions, corps, the schools, and the training centers, were the Continental Armies. The Continental Armies were 90 percent civilianized, and were run almost entirely by the comptrollers. So, as said, they were budgetdriven, were highly bureaucratized, and were generally unresponsive echelons of management. CONARC divided up money generally in accordance with priorities as they saw them, and then the Continental Armies generally divided up the money to their subordinate elements, and there
the hands of civilians
in

the comptroller shops at every

was little visibility over the probable effects during the decision-making process. CONARC didn't know what the money was being spent for in terms of end items or actions. So, General Palmer and had an increasingly difficult time with CONARC, and when we made cuts, as we had to do in adjusting downward the training base and the force structure, all sorts of unexpected things would happen out at some division or at some post, that seemed to make no sense at all. CONARC would ladle out the money and wait for the screams. Some of those screams were
I

Department of the Army level. For example, one time Sixth Army decided to meet lower spending goals by simply firing the entire civilian work force a super "gold watch ploy". Well, needless to say, CONARC was very defensive about this criticism.* In fairness to CONARC, and the many fine officers who commanded it and served it, the size and staffing of that headquarters and its subordinate armies was never adequate to the management and command responsibilities assigned. After all, CONARC ran the whole Army in
intolerable at the

the

US

except for

AMC.

Year after year


So,

CONARC

received cuts

in

budget and

in staff

while at the

same time the

job

became more complex. The demobilization


finally,

after

Vietnam broke the camel's back.

General Palmer gave


pulled out

me
I

the job of looking into the reorganization of

CONARC.

accepted the task with enthusiasm.


Seigle,

turned to

my studies

group, at that time headed up by John


Tuttle

and Jim Edgar, and gave them be managed. So, the concept was to split CONARC in half, and take the troop part out of it and call it something else. Or, describing it the other way around, pull the schools and training centers out, and then CONARC would be divided into two commands. The next thought which automatically came along was, if you're going to create a separate schools and training command, then why not combine it with the Combat Development Command (CDC)? The interface between the CDC and the school system had always been very important but very difficult to manage. Although there was a Combat Development Agency at each school, it did not belong to the school. Also, doctrine was really the business of the schools, which taught it to the Army. So, the simple framework for the whole reorganization was just that split CONARC in two and combine the CDC with the schools and training center part, and call it something new. and

we

two sharp

lieutenant colonels,

Bill

month

to

come up

with a concept.

CONARC was

clearly too big to

*"gold watch ploy" is a term referring to a bureaucratic maneuver by which a subordinate element deals with an unwanted reduction by offering to cut or eliminate that which it knows the higher element would never cut or abolish. The term stems from the ploy of offering to eliminate the gold watch presentation for 20 years of service. Its origin is business rather than military.

177

That concept was fleshed out

in

very broad terms

in

month by those two young

officers with

some
was

supervision from me.

We
it.

then had a very remarkable experience that probably should go

into the

Guinness Book of Records.

We took

this

study to General Palmer on a Monday, and he

very enthusiastic about


it.

approved
had a

We then went to General Westmoreland on Tuesday, and he We went to the Secretary of the Army on Wednesday and he approved Then we delay. We could not get to the Secretary of Defense, Melvin Laird, until Friday, at which
it. it.

time he approved

That

is

not the actual chronology but

is

very close to

it.

In

about a week,

we

went from concept


Thereafter,
all

to final approval.*

had to do was figure out how we were going to solve all the details. We brought General Kalergis in and made him the head of what was called the STEADFAST Study Group, which was charged with working out the details. But, the decision had already been made. Now, that certainly makes it a lot easier to implement than doing it the other way that is,

we

and then trying to get people to agree, which is something they'll never do. Although I'm prejudiced and subjective about it, really think that (a), it was a very good idea whose time had come; (b), it was a simple idea; and (c), think it has proved itself to have been very good for the Amry. It was hard to argue with. You could argue about the details but couldn't argue about the heart of the issue.**
all

preparing a big study which includes

of the details,

INTERVIEWER: When

the concept
it

was

initially

briefed at

CONARC
it

headquarters
as a

how was

it

received? Did they perceive

as having their ox gored, or did they see

good move?

They perceived it as having their ox being gored very badly, as did the CDC. Jack Norton was commanding the CDC at the time, and went out and told him what the conclusions think after of the study were. The first reaction was "Okay." But, upon reflection, and
I

GEN DEPUY:

consultation with his troops, he also considered this to be a bad idea.

It's

very interesting though,

when you

look back.
in

When George
message

Forsythe
all

was

the

commander

of the

CDC, he

formally asked

General Palmer

to have

of the schools assigned to him. Of course

CONARC

thought he was having a stroke of madness of some sort to suggest such a thing. But, he was
right.

He had the

right idea. His only


right.

problem was that

when we put TRADOC training centers, and Combat Development Command, it was, in part, just a logical outgrowth of Forsythe's proposal. What George had said was that he had no power, no teeth and no assets. His command was simply too small to get things done. Now, Jack Norton really felt the same way. Jack felt that the commander of CDC should be a four-star general. Well, he was later, but only because the job was expanded into something which people felt to be more appropriate. Now, in that respect, at one time it looked as though the TRADOC commander was going to be a lieutenant general. Not because General Abrams didn't want to have a four-star general in there,
time just wasn't
But,

two premature. The together and combined the schools, the


his idea

was

a year or

*Melvin R. Laird, a member of the House of Representatives in the 83rd through 90th Congresses, served as Secretary of Defense from 1969 to 1972. Later, he served as Domestic Advisor to the President during 1973-1974.

**For more information on STEADFAST, see James G. Army, 23 (October, 1973), 62-64.

Kalergis, "Purposeful

Changes: Reorganization, 1973,"

178

but because he didn't


star general.

know whether

or not he could

manage

the authorization for another four-

was the fact that when he picked the two commanders, General Kerwin and me, he was somewhat undecided as to which one of us ought to get which command. can see where he would have wondered about that. But, in any event, he made the In retrospect,
Also connected with that
I

decision to send

"Dutch"

to

FORSCOM

and

me

to

and that made


receive that

it

easy because "Dutch" preferred

TRADOC. personally preferred TRADOC, FORSCOM. When they told me that would
I
I

command, they said, "But you probably will be a lieutenant general." told them, "It make any difference to me." then went down and became deputy commander of CON ARC for about three or four months, from March to July of 1973. But, was told before went there that on the 1st of July would become the TRADOC commander.
I

doesn't

INTERVIEWER:

Did they

know that at CONARC?


it.

GEN DEPUY: CONARC knew


I

Well,

"Dutch" knew
I

February, and arrived in March, but he knew it. Well, announced officially, but it had been announced unofficially.*

"Dutch" went down in guess everybody knew it. It hadn't been


it.

You

see,

*For an overview on the early months of both FORSCOM and TRADOC, see Walter T. Kerwin, Jr., "In Army Forces Command The Mission is Readiness," Army, 23 (October, 1973), 27-30; and William E. DePuy, "TRADOC: A New Command for an Old Mission," Army, 23 (October, 1973), 31-34.

179

CHAPTER

IX

Changing An Army

INTERVIEWER: When you arrived on the scene at Fort Monroe, which was to become the headquarters of TRADOC, what did you perceive to be the most critical tasks that you needed to tackle, both within your own headquarters, and those things that you wanted to do for the Army
through

TRADOC?
Well, the

GEN DEPUY:

most urgent task was

to organize the

TRADOC

under sound manage-

ment concepts. Fortunately, from TRADOC's standpoint, the Army echelon, the Continental Armies, were over with FORSCOM, so didn't have to bother with them. So, we decided that it would be direct management from Headquarters, TRADOC, to some 19 operating agencies,
I

which is quite a broad span of control. brought to TRADOC my four years of experience in Program Management at the departmental level and brought people along with me who were able to install that John McGiffert and later, Max Thurman, Max Noah, and people of that caliber.
I

TRADOC was
off the bat

recognized to be the best managed, most responsive


that.

command
had
I

in

the

Army
all

right

because of

We
we

knew what was going

on.

We

visibility
still

over

of our

programs. You
civilized

may

recall that

introduced the contract system which


different installations.

believe

is

the only

and effective way to deal with 19


simple.
I

The contract was


Benning, or the

signed a piece of paper jointly with, say the


of Fort
Sill,

Commandant

of Fort

Commander of the Training Center at Fort Jackson, which laid out in great detail exactly what it was that he was going to do during the year with the money and the other resources that gave him. What that also forced us to do was to decide precisely what we were not going to do. If it wasn't on that piece of paper, then we weren't going to do it! But, if it was on the piece of paper, then he was going to have to do it with the resources provided. So, we negotiated the contract which ensured that we had no misunderstandings. If during the year, had to change the resources available such as pulling money away from one of my commanders, then personally went to see that commander, and we renegotiated his contract. In other words, we both agreed as to what additional things he would not do\ Therefore, there were no surprises, and we didn't do a lot of dumb things. They didn't throw a lot of "gold watches" at me in the hopes that would not take the money away from them. would just say, "I'm going to take the money away from you. Now, we're going to decide what the new
Commandant
or the
I I I

contract

will

say." They

still

use that, and

still

believe that

it's

good system.

INTERVIEWER:
to do.

Please give an example of the types of things that Fort Benning would contract

GEN DEPUY:
young men

Sure.

One

of the things they

would contract
in

to

do would be to handle a

certain

student load such as a certain number of lieutenants


learning to

the basic course, a certain

number

of

jump out

of airplanes

in

the airborne course, a certain

number

of captains

180

in

the advanced course, and a certain

number

of sergeants attending certain

Noncommissioned

System (NCOES) courses. Commanders would contract to spend so much money on the repair and maintenance of facilities. They would contract to support certain peripheral activities in the general area of Fort Benning in support of reserve components, and so on. In short, everything they would have to do during the upcoming year was in the contract in sufficient detail to be binding both on them and on me.
Officer Education

INTERVIEWER:
Development

In

addition to the school and training centers you also took on the

Combat

Command and

integrated that with the schools.

How

did

you assess that marriage,

as such, taking place?

GEN DEPUY:

Well,

assessed the marriage as being necessary and natural. After

all,

the

Combat

Development Agencies already were located at the schools. Although not under the command of the schools, they were involved in matters which really should have been under the jurisdiction of the schools. brought to TRADOC some strong feelings about the way the combat development process had worked, or had not worked, in the past. One of the feelings had was that they spent too much time on very long-range studies like the "Army 1990," or the "Army 2000," which
I I

never seemed to cause anything to happen. Therefore,

changed the focus and brought


doing that.

it

way
that

back
2000,
the

in

close,

and

incidentally, I've

been heavily

criticized for

What

believed

was

instead of trying to divine by


I

some

intellectual process,

was more interested in whether or M-113 personnel carrier, or for the Chaparral-Vulcan. based this belief on the premise that people aren't smart enough to see what we'll need in the year 2000. The reason we aren't smart enough to do that is that the people we ask in 1979, for instance, to look at the shape of the Army
I

what the Army would look like in the year not we needed a replacement for the M-60 tank, or for

the 1979

Army they see out there is simply a reflection of some gimmicks. They'll say, "By then we'll have more lasers, and we may have atomic energy, and we may have this, and we may have that." But, the concept is all based on a 1979 consciousness and information. just don't believe humans can look to the long-range
in

the year 2000, possess a 1979 mentality. So, the

Army

with

future that well, so


I

stopped most of the long-range studies.


of the so-called

weapons requirement process. They used to have things called QMRs or Qualitative Materiel Requirements. This was a little bit like the Army in the year 2000. Somebody was supposed to sit down and visualize the perfect weapon of the
also tried to
future.

make some sense out

Then, after you have visualized and described

it,

you turned
the
first

it

over to the engineers and

the scientists and asked

them

to

make

one. Well,

in

place, there isn't

anybody

in

TRADOC

CDC who can see further than the scientists or the engineers have already seen. Secondly, the QMRs constituted a hunting license for the scientists and engineers in the labs to spend a lot of money seeking a vague objective. tried to turn that around and said, "We will or the things we would like study the M-60 tank. We will say what is that we don't like about
or
I

it

it,

to

have improved on that tank. Then


they can

we'll ask

AMC
or

to

tell

us what they can do, and have them

certify that

make

the gun

fire farther,

more

accurately, or that they can provide better


all

armor, obtain longer ranges, improve fuel consumption, or enhance maintenance. They'll write
that

down and

certify that that's

all

true,

and that they can accomplish

it

given the state of the

art.

181

Then,

we'll

agree on what we're going to do, and that

will

be a

ROC
I

or a Required Operations
I

Capability."

Now,

got the reputation of being a "ROC-crusher" because

wouldn't approve

unless the developer certified that he could do it. That way wasn't giving him a license to and could hold his feet to the fire. Those were the two areas in which tried to bring this very vague intellectual exercise back into the realm of hardware and practicality. By today's mentality am judged to have been in the Stone Age. Time will tell.
steal,
I I I

ROCs

you put together some new organizations to help you do that, like the Logistics Center and the Combined Arms Combat Development Agency (CACDA) at Leavenworth.
I

INTERVIEWER:

know

that

way, these organizations had existed before. There was a Combined Arms Combat Development Agency at Leavenworth, and there was a thing called the Personnel and Logistics Agency at Fort Lee. We took that agency and had it concentrate on logistics only
Well,
in

GEN DEPUY:

and created an Admin Center at Fort Ben Harrison to handle the personnel aspects. So, the Admin Center had finance and the Adjutant General, Leavenworth had all of the combat arms and combat support elements, and the Log Center had all of the combat service support. They were intermediate management echelons. would have to say that all of them have had trouble. They are in a rather awkward middle position between TRADOC and the operating agencies of the schools, and it's been difficult for them to find out exactly how to operate in order to find the
I

levers of power. Just as

left,

the deputy from

Combined Arms Center

at

Leavenworth.

We

went out and became the head of the put good talent out there, and think that they're
I

TRADOC

now
long

beginning to perform their function


is

fairly well.

But,

it

is

a very difficult job. Part of the

problem

that they are a long

way from

the flagpole

a long

way from

the

TRADOC flagpole, a

way from

the

R&D
to

Sometimes they tend

and from AMC, and from the Department of the Army. get behind the power curve.
flagpole,

INTERVIEWER: Of

course one of the things that you did at

TRADOC was
in

bring a

new
you

philosophy of training with you, which started at the


Schools, and even reached out into the units.
arrived at

Army

Training Centers,

the Service

What were your thoughts about

training as

TRADOC, and how did you


Well,
I

intend to get those thoughts translated into actions?

GEN DEPUY:
centers
I

would have
I

to say that

was unimpressed. was


I

horrified

when first visited the schools and the training by some of the things that found. For example, at the
I I

Engineer School
learn

discovered that the engineer lieutenants were never given an opportunity to

how

to drive a bulldozer, or run a road grader or a front-end loader. Yet, they


I

would

eventually go to an engineer platoon having that type of equipment, and

couldn't understand

how they would be able


orientation

to supervise, or to criticize, or to train.

Down

at Fort

Benning most of the

training of the lieutenants

was accomplished

in
I

a classroom instead of out with troops.

The

was very academic, very intellectual. don't know whose fault it was. it was a fault. There's been a big argument for years about education and training. I'm not sure what all the differences are, but do know that the Army had moved pretty much towards education and away from training. TRADOC is now criticized for going too far towards training.
didn't think
I

Some

people

182

My

conviction

is
it

that
will

TRADOC works,
training,
I

unbalanced towards education, and that as hard as only bring the thing back into balance. As between the two, education and
totally

we were

you need both. At Fort Knox thought that the

training of the tank lieutenants, the


first

awful.

They

really

weren't being trained to be tank commanders


really

armor lieutenants, was and tank platoon leaders


basic courses
in all

second. They were

being trained to be tank

company commanders. The

them not to be what they were about to be, but what they eventually might be. And, when they went to the advanced course, they were taught about brigades and battalions instead of about being a company commander. found that to be very interesting. It was part of the philosophy of the Mobilization Army in which everybody got a job one or two grades above where he then stood. But, we don't have a Mobilization Army; we have an 800,000 man Army! That's what we are going to go to war with. Why should we go to war with untrained platoon leaders, untrained company commanders, and untrained battalion commanders, when they have to win the first battle? So, the first thing tried to do was to bring the school system back closer to where the Israeli school system is, which is a training system that trains tank commanders, tank platoon leaders, and tank company commanders at about the time that they are going to discharge those duties. As said, this is controversial, and right now there is a bit of a reaction setting in to all of that. just hope things do not go back to where they were, which was
of the service schools taught
I
I

really

bad.
training centers really upset

Now, the

me.

CONARC

had run the training centers with an

iron

hand. Everything that


latitude or flexibility,

was done
and the

in

the training centers

first

consequence of
it

was prescribed by CONARC. There was no that was that there was also no feeling of
"It's in

responsibility.
in

No

matter

how dumb

might be, the answer always was,

the directive.

It's

what we were told to do." This meant that the major general commanding the training center went around and inspected only to see how well his Center was doing what CONARC had told them to do. The colonels, the lieutenant colonels, and the captains all went around with their eyes glazed over, bored to death. The drill sergeants had taken over. Over time, the drill sergeants will distort even a very clear directive, and find some little aspect of it that was never intended to be important and make that the centerpiece of some training exercise or bit of instruction. Well, it was really bad. The execution was bad, the
the Program of Instruction (POD. We're doing just

concept was bad, the training was bad, the supervision was bad, morale was bad, and motivation

was bad. One term they used


term "on the
trail"

in

the training centers that conveys part of the problem


I

trail." don't know comes from, but it refers to driving cattle herds from Texas to Colorado, or from Oregon to Colorado. That was the mentality that pervaded the training centers. The cadre were just getting one bunch of cattle through, and then another bunch of cattle would come along

sergeants would refer to as being "on the

whether or not you

was what the drill know where the

to be

herded through, with a


It

lot

of screaming, shouting, yelling,

and cursing, but with

little

effort

to teach.

was just an

effort to get

through the day, to get another 100 trainees, or another 1,000

trainees through without an accident


did

and without some sort of

disciplinary problem. Well,

what

was

there's anything that


tell

me

"Each of you major generals running a training center is now goes on that's wrong or dumb, stop it, and change it. Do what's smart, and later." told them, "I don't ever want to be told by you or any of your colonels, captains,
say,
totally responsible.
I

If

183

dumb, or that find out is dumb, because you were told to do it. From now on you are going to do only what you think is right." Well, that had quite an impact. Now, one of the impacts that it had was that they all
lieutenant colonels, or sergeants, that you're doing something that's
I

and they thought up all sorts of marvelous new things to do, and marvelous new ways of doing it. Suddenly, they were enthusiastic. They now had a mansized job to do, and they couldn't cover up anymore. In my opinion, it turned the whole situation
started doing things
better,

much

around.
Recently, the

Army

got

all

excited

when

folks discovered that there

were differences between

the training programs at the various training centers.

You may be

sure that they are minor.


is

You

may
trail"

also be sure that the price the

Army pays

for absolute conformity

too high.

It

results in

lousy, irresponsible, lackluster training by officers

and NCOs who are bored to death with "on the

type training.
last
I

and biggest part of all of this is the whole philosophy of training. There have to talk about General Gorman, because General Gorman and the others who were with him on the Combat Arms Training Board (CATB) at Fort Benning, brought to TRADOC a new concept of performance-oriented training, which is a systematic way to go about the setting of training objectives through the careful determination of tasks, conditions, and standards. They also brought to training some exciting new technology and procedures. It took me some time, frankly, saw the great benefit and logic of to digest it all myself after came to TRADOC. But, finally, what they were doing and fully supported it. The credit for the concept really has to go to General Gorman and to a number of other people who worked with him, both earlier and later. They are the ones who articulated this concept, and who were the leading proponents of it in the Army.*
I
I

Now, the

General
Paul
F.

Gorman

Fora biographical sketch of General Gorman,

USA

Retired, see note,

page 149.

184

INTERVIEWER:

This concept included the

Skill

Qualification Tests (SQTs).

GEN DEPUY:

That's right, the Soldiers' Manuals, SQTs, and the


all

ARTEP

performance-

and then, the establishment of standards against which you trained the soldier, and the conditions under which he had to perform the tasks before he was then ready to go on to the next step. You can apply that system would like to to almost any kind of Army training, however complex even tactical training. say that in addition to General Gorman, there was General Seigle who took over CATB, and Bill Hilsman and George Stotser, who also had CATB, and certainly eminent among all of the contributors to the theory, were Frank Hart and Bob Dirmeyer. Now, there are many others, but haven't the time or the memory to name them all. There were a lot of very bright people who became the apostles and disciples of Gorman. Some of them, suppose, were the ones who put it in Gorman's head in the first place and who have carried the ball in what I'm sure is the right direction for the Army.*
oriented training of
kinds. Plus the front-end analysis of the tasks,
I
I I

INTERVIEWER: What
corps?

is

your view on the classic issue of training versus education of the Officer

GEN DEPUY:

Interesting question. I'm not sure that

have

it

right

because

have been accused,

along with General Gorman, of being a trainer, not an educator.


Rogers, then Chief of Staff of the Army, asked

me

to take

In fact, at one time, General on the job of sorting out doctrine at

between the cracks when General Abrams eliminated the "Army" echelon because he believed that Army Groups would control the corps and that such Army Groups would be multinational. Well, told General Rogers that would do that but that needed the Army War College as the instrument. That would leave training and doctrinal issues
echelons above corps. That doctrine
fell
I I

*Ma/or General John W. Seigle, USA Retired, was commissioned a second lieutenant of Armor in 1953. In Vietnam he commanded the 1st Squadron, 4th Cavalry, 1st Infantry Division (1967-68). Other assignments included duty as the President, CATB (1972-73); Commander, 2d Armored Cavalry Regiment (1973-74); Deputy Chief of Staff for Training, TRADOC (1977-79); and Deputy Chief of Staff for Operations, USAREUR (1980-82). Lieutenant General William J. Hilsman, USA Retired, was commissioned a second lieutenant in the Signal Corps in 1954. Other assignments included duty as Commander, 144th Signal Battalion, 4th Armored Division (1969-71); President, CATB (1973); Commander, 1st Signal Group (1973-75); Commanding General, The Signal Center and Commandant, The Signal School (1977-80); and Director, Defense Communications Agency (1980-83). Major General George R. Stotser, USA, was commissioned a second lieutenant of Armor in 1956. He commanded the 1st Battalion, 12th Cavalry, 1st Cavalry Division (Airmobile) in 1969. Other assignments have included duty as Commander, 1st Brigade, 1st Armored Division (1974-76); President, CATB (1976-77); and Commander, 2d Armored Division (Forward) (198283). General Stotser is presently serving as Commanding General, 3rd Infantry Division (1985). Colonel Franklin A. Hart, USA Retired, was commissioned a second lieutenant in the Infantry in 1954. In addition to commanding the 4th Battalion, 39th Infantry, 9th Infantry Division in Vietnam (1968-69), he served as a member of the CATB (1972-74); as President, CATB (1974); as Assistant Deputy Chief of Staff for Training (Plans and Projects), TRADOC (1975-79); and as Commander, Army Research Institute of Behavior and Social Sciences (1979-81). Colonel Robert P. Dirmeyer, USA Retired, was commissioned a second lieutenant in the Field Artillery in 1955. Assignments included command of the 2d Battalion, 4th Artillery, 9th Infantry Division, in Vietnam (1968-69); command of the 2d Battalion, 321st Artillery (Airborne), 82d Airborne Division (1970-71); duty as a member of CATB (1972-73); as Chief, Individual Training Branch, TRADOC (1975); and as Chief, Training Management Institute, TRADOC, with duty station at Fort Eustis,
Virginia (1975-77).

185

for battalions, divisions

and corps

at

theaters at Carlisle.
that that

As you can

see, there

Leavenworth, and for corps, armies, army groups, and would have been overlap at the corps level. He thought

made sense but the Deputy Chief of Staff for Operations and Plans (DCSOPS), which controlled the Army War College (AWC), was horrified at the thought that TRADOC might get its hands on his "educational" institution. suppose he thought that Gorman and would send drill
I I

any event, TRADOC did not get the AWC. The void in doctrine is being cobbled together slowly by a conglomerate of DCSOPS, Leavenworth, Carlisle, and the National War College (NWC). As to your original question, suppose that training deals with "how to perform" a task or a group of tasks within a function, such as how to (1) assemble, (2) clean, (3) load, (4) aim, and (5) fire a rifle. The performance test would be whether or not the bullet hit the
sergeants to
Carlisle. In
I

target, with

all

of the previous tasks being

hand, would permit the soldier, or officer


of firing a
it

subsumed in the process. Education, on the other perhaps, more than the lower ranks, to put the function
And, the context is almost infinite as tactical and operational dimensions

rifle

at

an enemy

in

combat

into the larger context.

can be expanded to go beyond the technical, organizational,

to the strategic, political, historical, psychological, and ethical spheres as well. In shorthand,
training tells us

"what and how;" education

tells

us

"why" and even "whether."

INTERVIEWER: What developments do you


you were commanding

consider to have been the most significant while

TRADOC?
guess

GEN DEPUY:
would say that

Well,

we

should take them by functional category. Starting with training,

reorienting the school


it.
I

system so that

it

had

a larger training as

educational aspect to
that. But, there are

regard that as very important. General

Gorman and
I

opposed to saw eye to eye on

and there are those who feel that we should educate officers and train soldiers. think that is wrong. think you should train a man for the job he is going to perform, and then you can educate him so that the intellectual and moral environment in which he pursues his particular job will be enhanced. That way you will have safeguards against stupidity, immorality, illegality, and so on. But, believe you have to train a gunner to shoot. You have to train a squad leader to lead a squad. You have to train a man to be a tank commander. You have to train a man to be a tank platoon leader, and incidentally, he shouldn't be a tank platoon leader unless he first has been trained to be a tank commander because a tank platoon leader is also a tank commander. think you train a company commander. You don't educate him, you train him to use tanks and tank platoons and infantry and antitank guided missiles. You teach him all about those things, about their tactical employment and about the organizations which employ them. Also, you teach him how to train the people inside his organization. believe you train a battalion commander to operate a battalion. You look at a manual for a battalion task force, tank or mech, and think you
those

who

feel that that


I

was

a mistake,

are looking at an operator's manual just

like

when you buy a


little

car

You buy

Toro lawn mower and you get


I

booklet that

tells

and you get an operator's manual. you how to put it together and

manuals on the combat operations of a platoon, or a company, or a battalion, are, in fact, the operator's manuals, and the lieutenant colonels, or the captains, or the lieutenants, or the sergeants, need to be trained to get the most out of the mechanisms they have inherited.
think that the field

how to operate the thing.

186

Now,
system,
for unit

TRADOC did a
in

lot in

that direction, both


in

in

the officers' school system,

in

the

NCO

school

the training centers, and even


It

the

Army

Training and Evaluation Programs (ARTEPs)


Israeli

commanders.

partakes to a very great extent of the

system. The

Israeli

system

is

almost purely training. They don't have the time or the structure to educate for

some

future war.

They only have time


it

to train for this war, or the

one they think could

start
I

tomorrow morning. So,


it

is

a very austere, efficient, concentrated,

and highly focused

effort.
I

think

is

also appropriate

don't think that any other and necessary because of the complexity of modern weapons. approach can cope with the modern battlefield and modern weapons. So, TRADOC moved the pendulum toward the center between education and training by pushing it hard towards training.

We

did that

because training had almost disappeared,

particularly for the officers.

Not to worry

that education
officers

was stamped

out.

It

was

not.

It

was simply
I

that

up to an equal status with their education. doubt that it absolutely certain that the pendulum will swing back. Performance-oriented training is so demanding that weak sisters will begin to drift away from it and drift back to the warm embrace of vague educational goals instead of specific training tasks. You can bet your farm on it! Now, of course, with combat developments, as indicated earlier, we tried very hard to bring it back to the practical, real world, where people could understand it and do something about it. And, we tried to orient it towards Europe, which is the principal and directed mission of the Army. TRADOC was involved in the process of decision-making during weapon system development through operational test design and then, by taking the test results through analysis, and drawing judgments as to whether or not the system was cost-effective in comparison with its predecessors
I

we tried to bring the training of we ever made and you can be

or current competitors. This keeps

TRADOC in

business during the long years


aircraft.

it

takes to develop a

to twelve years. But, during this period of time, there are very formalized steps during

were taking ten which the new model is tested and then the test results are analyzed to determine whether or not it is a good idea to proceed further when you compare the new weapon's actual performance against either
tank, a

new

new

antitank guided missile or a

new

Some

of these systems

the old

weapon

that

it

is

scheduled to replace, or against some alternative weapon system. So,


more,
I

combat development process was sharpened up considerably, and the leverage of the user through TRADOC was increased. Now, the third area, which really falls in between the first two in a rather awkward way organizationally, is doctrine how to fight. After many experiments and much puzzling over where to put the responsibility, finally put it in a special office called the Tactical Doctrine Office, which was an appendage of my own office. understand that General Starry is going to create a separate staff section, but for the same reason. If you give it over to Combat Developments you have trouble because it gets into an area where a lot of individual weapons systems are being developed. There you don't seem to find the initiative and authority required to take new doctrinal directions. Those new initiatives almost have to come from, and with, the authority of the commander of TRADOC. That's what discovered and that's what General Starry is discovering. wasn't able to get Leavenworth to do it. Although they did a lot of good work, they just didn't seem to be able to do that. If you put it over on the training side of the house you have the same problem. So, Starry is deciding now what decided a long time ago, which is, if you are going to change the doctrine by which the Army fights, which is enormously important and controversial, the higher level commanders must be directly involved. So, after the Arab-Israeli war, and after
without saying a whole
lot

think that the

187

new weapons systems, we embarked on updating the doctrine for the fighting elements of the Army. Our aim was to put out 40 or more "How to Fight" manuals, which would tell everyone in the combat and combat support arms how the Army would fight on the modern battlefield at every echelon from the weapons crew up through the division. That effort is about 60 to 70 percent complete now. The first manual was FM 100-5, and all the others in some way or
our examination of
other, are related to, or derived from

FM

100-5.

IlRlttP

"How to FM FM FM
100-5
71-1

Fight" Manuals

Operations

The Tank and Mechanized


Infantry

Company Team

71-2

The Tank and Mechanized Infantry Battalion Task Force

more weapons oriented than any doctrine we have ever had before. It starts with weapons and then goes to the enemy, and then looks for the best solution for applying the weapons against the enemy in accordance with whatever mission you may have, like, for example, the defense of Europe. The doctrine in FM 1005 was influenced greatly not only by weapons but also by the difficult military-political situation facing the German Army. General Abrams and Lieutenant General Hildebrandt, the Inspektur (Chief of Staff) of the German Army, directed me and Lieutenant General von Reichert, the German Army's Vice Chief of Staff, to conduct a series of staff talks to harmonize US and German doctrine, procedures and, if possible, weapons requirements. Very simply, the German problem is that West Germany has very little depth in which to conduct mobile operations. The Germans are
It

was

not a revolutionary doctrine,

it

was

evolutionary, but

it's

188

not interested

in

maneuvering around and through the

industrial heartland

and population centers

of the Bundesrepublik which lie just a few miles from the border. Thus, with the German insistence on "Forward Defense," the military-political compromise we reached was to conduct

an "active" (read highly mobile) defense compressed into a band of terrain of perhaps 20, 30 or 40
kilometers from the border. Recently, this concept has
labeled "attrition warfare."*

come under heavy


oriented too

criticism

and has been


the defense

Furthermore, the argument goes that

US

doctrine

is

much towards
will

and

is

too dependent on high technology. These are profound questions which


I

be argued for a

long time. There are no easy answers. That,

would say then,

is

the third major contribution of

TRADOC.
a big testing organization, an analytical organization, a training publications and many other things, but those were the big three training advances in organization, ROTC, technique and in practicality; bringing combat development forward into the world of today's technology and getting it out of the vague distant future, while systematizing TRADOC's involvement in weapons systems acquisition; and then, lastly, updating or publishing a full new set of operating manuals for the Army.
all

Behind

of that

is

INTERVIEWER: One

of the things that

you

initiated
tell

when you commanded TRADOC was


us just

study on the organization of the division.

Would you

how that fits

into

all

of this?

GEN DEPUY: Yes. Very simply, the new doctrine of the Army or the doctrine which is expressed in FM 100-5 and all of the derivative manuals, very clearly is based around weapons systems.
says that you study the weapons, yours and the enemy's, and then you look for
optimizing the

It

ways of employment of your new weapons and minimizing your vulnerability to his weapons. Now, what we are confronted with is that new weapons are arriving in great numbers, all within a very short period of time. If you believe what the doctrine says, which is that tactics are based on weapons applied against a particular enemy for a particular purpose, then when you get new weapons you have to take a look at your organization and your tactics.** Division 86, which is what they now call it we called it the Division Restructuring Study is an effort to adapt our organization to new weapons which are more lethal and more complex.*** For example, the XM-1 tank, the Infantry Fighting Vehicle (ITV), the Improved Tow Vehicle (ITV), the new air defense weapons, the attack helicopter, advanced tactical fighters, new artillery ammunition, TACFIRE, and other automated control systems, are, in most cases, as complicated or more complicated than World War aircraft, which were all flown by officers. say it is not too great a stretch of the imagination to have only lieutenants in XM-1 tanks. could
II
I
I

John

*These criticisms and an excellent discussion of the evolution of Army doctrine during L. Romjue, From Active Defense to Airland Battle: The Development of (Washington: USGPO, 1984).
**This discussion refers to the 1976 version of

this period are

Army

Doctrine,

contained in 1973-1982

FM

100-5.

The

Field

Manual was changed substantially

in

1982.

***For an overview of the evolution of Division 86, see John US Army Training and Doctrine Command, 1982).

L.

Romjue,

History of Army 86, 2 Vols. (Fort Monroe:

189

justify that.

would suggest that we put warrant officers in as an immediate solution just to raise the quality of the tank commanders. If we already are having trouble in achieving full performance with the weapons we have today, and maintain that we are having great difficulty in extracting the full potential from our weapons and from our organization, then we have to look for solutions. There are two areas of solution and Division 86 is simply a reflection of that search. The first question we must answer is whether or not we intend to raise the quality of the operators to match the quality of the weapons. We just don't have the last surviving corporal in charge of a XM-1 if you want to exploit the capabilities of the XM-1 any more than the Air Force would put the oldest surviving mechanic in the cockpit of an F-15. The Air Force would never consider it, yet we consider it every day. We even take people out of the orderly room and the mess hall and put them in tanks. The Air Force doesn't do that. In the Army you buy quality by rank. If you can only get so much quality for $400 a month and you need to pay $1500 a month for the kind of quality you need, then what you are talking about is a lieutenant. If you are willing to pay $800 a month then you are talking about a sergeant. So, in the Army you get quality by raising the rank or increasing
I

am

not suggesting that

we do

it

right

now. Frankly,

the rank mixture.

weapons, both tactically and mechanically, the second thing you want to do is simplify the tactical training and maintenance responsibilities of the platoon leaders, company commanders and battalion commanders, to a level where they can cope with it. Right now they can't cope with it. They have too many men to be trained on too many weapons, in too short a time, with too many diversions. We know from testing that the difference between a well-trained crew and an average crew is very great. It can range from 20 to 50 percent of effectiveness, sometimes even more. So, that means you can get more combat effectiveness by increasing the performance of the unit than you ever could by putting new weapons in it. Well, that's what Division 86 is all about an effort to improve performance by improving quality, by increasing the leadership mix, and through simplification by reducing the size of units so that the tactical and technical training comes back down to manageable levels.
of the complexity of these

Now, because

INTERVIEWER: You have


number

written extensively

in

the area of doctrine and have published

in

on finding the essence of how the United States is to successfully conduct warfare in the future. wonder if you would outline for us the lessons learned from the Arab-Israeli War of 1973, and what you took from that
of periodicals. All of the

work you

did at

TRADOC was focused

war

that

is

applicable for the United States

Army.*

GEIM

DEPUY:
if

Well, the

first

thing the Arab-Israeli

War

did

was

to provide a marvelous excuse or

springboard,

you

will,

for reviewing and updating our

own

doctrine.

Some

of the evidence

coming out

of that

short period of

war was awesome. For example, the losses of equipment that occurred in a time, and the fact that the Israelis ran more tanks through their maintenance

*Among the numerous accounts of the Arab-Israeli conflict of 1973, some of the more readable include: Avraham Adan, On the Banks of the Suez: An Israeli General's Personal Account of the Yom Kippur War (San Rafael: Presidio Press, 1980); Chaim Herzog, The War of Attonement: October, 1973 (Boston: Little, Brown and Company, 1975); The Insight Team of the London Sunday Times The Yom Kippur War (Garden City: Doubleday & Company, Inc., 1974); and Edgar O'Ballance, No Victor, No Vanquished: The Yom Kippur War (San Rafael: Presidio Press, 1978).

190

number of tanks they possessed at the beginning of the very short war. The lethality and range of weapons and the tremendous importance of well-trained crews and tactical commanders, as evidenced by the performance in certain areas of small numbers of Israelis against large numbers of say, Syrians. It also fed into our training philosophy which discussed earlier the training of a platoon leader, a tank commander, a gunner, and a battalion commander. It helped us argue for more training within the Army establishment. Now, as far as "how to fight" goes, the big lessons applied to the lower echelons: the crew
system than the
total
I

armored force; the mine-clearing techniques; and the assault of fortified positions. There wasn't anything that happened in the Arab-Israeli War that is in conflict with the doctrine which now has been published; but, it would be incorrect to say that the Arab-Israeli War was the sole foundation upon which that doctrine was built. In fact, there are aspects of the
drills

of the Israeli

current

US Army

doctrine which the Israelis do not consider directly applicable to their tactical

one being elasticity or the active defense. They believe that they are perfectly able to on their frontiers and although they had trouble doing so in the Sinai, they essentially defend pulled it off in the Golan region. So, there are differences.
situation,

FM

100-5, therefore, partakes of the lessons of the Arab-Israeli

War

primarily in terms of the

importance of weapons and weapons operators' proficiency and performance. As for the overall

much more from the very unique environment of NATO, which involves a two-to-one or three-to-one enemy superiority, the requirement for forward defense because of the
tactics,

they are drawn

political

dynamics involved,

particularly in

much depth
reserves
in

of terrain to fight

West Germany the fact of the matter is, there isn't on and there isn't much terrain to give away and lastly, as have
I

described more than once, the fact that the reserves

in

the Soviet Union are a

lot

closer than the

the United States, and the Soviet Union's reserves are

much

larger.
it

So, from the


of the
it

moment
doctrine.

the battle starts,

we

are at a disadvantage, and as the

war goes on

gets worse, not


all

better, as far as force ratios. So,


It

FM

100-5 tries to express a unifying concept behind


at great length,

new

starts out

and discusses

weapons

characteristics. Next,

talks at

some

length about the tactics of the Russians.

When FM

100-5

was written

it

was just

before the current emphasis on a broad front attack, or a

single echelon attack, or a daring thrust,

whatever you want to


It

call

it.

In

those days most people


very clear that there

were thinking about the


are other options

classic

breakthrough operation.

has since

become

and that the Russians may well use a broad front attack and what now are called Operational Maneuver Groups (OMGs). It really doesn't change what you have to do, but it does make it more difficult. FM 100-5 says that the first thing you have to do is understand the enemy. You have to understand his weapons and you have to understand his tactics. Also, you have to understand your own weapons, and how to use them to their absolute maximum, and to try to minimize your vulnerability to his weapons. It says that you have to have superior intelligence or information on the enemy if you are outnumbered. You have to have intelligence good enough and soon enough so that you have at least a slight jump on your enemy, something that is very
difficult to

accomplish.
or

As he concentrates, whether
120
little

in

five big concentrations,

or 30

little

concentrations,

even

concentrations,

you

know through your

sensors and

reconnaissance, and your target acquisition systems, at least the general location of his mass and
the direction of his

defeat each of your enemy's concentrations.

movement. Then, using your own mobility, you can begin to concentrate To do that you need all of your ground mobility, all

to

of

191

your

air mobility, all


is
all

of the

TAC

AIR, and

all

the

flexibility of

your
I

artillery, missiles

and rockets.

and clearly, that and corps commanders. The business of getting the Army on the right part of the battlefield and acquiring the intelligence which is needed in order to do that is the job of the generals at division and corps and above. Now, if you have been able to concentrate an adequate force quickly, then perhaps you can stop him and then counterattack to destroy him, and you can accomplish this mission well forward, which, of course, is what the Germans hope will happen.
think correctly

That

concentration. And, the manual describes, and


is

concentration

primarily the business of division

If,

concentration,

on the other hand, there has been some some deception on the enemy's
little

glitch in the intelligence, part, or just a

some

hesitation in the
hits

mistake on our part, and he

our

small force with a very hard blow, from a very large force, then the doctrine says that

we

have to

trade a

bit of
in

space for time and casualties.

It

describes

stubborn action
trained,

a very small area, against a very large force,

how we can, in fact, fight a very if we are very good at it, very well-

have good control, understand weapons, and use those weapons at their optimum engagement ranges, and then, move so that we are always fighting battles where they are most advantageous to us and least advantageous to the other side. There are many other things that
warfare, and
I

need to be done including the synchronization of maneuver, air defense, fire support, electronic all of the combat service support, through good command and control.

would

like
is

to

end

this discussion

by saying that there are people


in

who

feel that

the doctrine of

the

Army
I

too defensive. They feel that success

battle only

comes
it

to the attacker.

And, they
the

are disturbed about the

amount
of that.
I

of time, effort,

and concentration that


I

we now have on

defense.

agree with
it

all

think

it

is

too bad.

don't think

is

a formula for

winning the
not have a

war. At best,
life in

is

a formula for a stalemate or for deterrence. Unfortunately, however, the facts of

NATO, and

the correlation of forces as the Soviets


in

call

it,

are such that

we do

you ask the Germans why they defended for two and one tell you because the forces were almost equal, half years in and they used the rest of their forces to defeat the Russians. If you ask the Germans why they defended in Russia for two and one half years after their initial attack in World War II, they would
general offensive capability

Europe.

If

France during World

War

they would

say because the


concentrating too

ratio of forces,

the resources and the

means

of

war dictated

that.

once

discussed this with General Haig. He accosted

me

with the fact that he thought


I

we were

much on

the defense.
in

replied that

wasn't concentrating on the defense, he

was.

pointed out to him that

FM

100-5,

we had one

chapter on the offense and one chapter on

the defense, and that he

was

the one

who

turned to the chapter on the defense and for very good


I

because he has to defend. The correlation of forces is such that he must. said, "If, on the other hand, you prefer to attack, go back to Chapter 1. It tells you how to do that. But, notice that you are spending all of your time on Chapter 2." So, this causes the Army some moral anguish. It hurts the feelings of soldiers to always be
reasons
I

talking

about the defense; there

is

a yearning to attack

and to counterattack.
defensive

Incidentally, the

counterattack to destroy an

enemy force which has been stopped by

fires is

the essence

you need the forces, you need the resources, you need the ammunition, and you need the ability to sustain it. It is my judgment that the man who writes the doctrine doesn't decide how to fight any particular campaign; rather, the man who decides which part of the doctrine he is going to use is the operational commander
of the "active" defense. But, the counteroffensive
to

do

that

192

and he decides
Presently,
it

how he
all

is

whatever theater of war he happens to be in at the time. Haig and Blanchard. At one time it was Pershing, and at another time it was
is

going to fight

in

Eisenhower. They

acted

in

accordance with the

relative strength of the forces

opposing them

and

their mission.*

you had to put your finger on two or three things that between fighting outnumbered and winning and fighting outnumbered and
If

INTERVIEWER:

spell the difference

losing,

what would

they be?

GEN DEPUY:

If

you have force

ratios that are


is

near the three-to-one or two-to-one

level,

performance by the crews and

tactical leaders

going to make the difference. The quality of our

and company commanders, and the quality of our tank crews, infantry fighting vehicle crews, air defense crews, and helicopter crews, will make the difference. believe that the difference between the good unit and the bad unit is often a factor of four or five, even though they have the same number of men and the same weapons. There is no way that we can get the same degree of improved performance out of some small change in weapons as we
corps, division, brigade, battalion
I

can get through the careful selection of people, the training of people, the selection of leaders,

and the training of leaders and

units.

INTERVIEWER:
the equipment.
I

You're talking now, not only of optimizing the capability of weapons, but of

all

your units.

remember when you discussed Vietnam, you were concerned with the agility of The helicopters were there and all of that, but it was the commander who could think
use that equipment

through

how to successfully
Mobility
is

who made the difference.


weapons
at

GEN DEPUY:

mental. Given any set of


in

any

particular time, the battle will

two armies than it will be by differences between weapons. The difference between the M-60 tank and XM-1 tank, although important, is less important than the difference between high performance units
leadership and troop performance between the

be more affected by the difference

and low performance

units.

INTERVIEWER: You mentioned


active defense has

mobility yet

one of the

criticisms that has

been directed

at the

been that

it

assumes

a mobility differential that

we do

not have.

GEN DEPUY:
Really,
it's

don't think the active defense claims that you need a mobility differential

sort

of a tank for a tank, or an IFV for an IFV, or a helicopter for a helicopter


intelligence;
it's

because you don't.


high

the decision-making process;


that mobility of mind.

it's

the technique of using mission-type


is

orders and moving fast;

it's

The

mobility of the Air Force


is

enough

for

concentration, and the mobility of the attack helicopter

high

enough

for concentration

because

USA Retired, see note, page 149. General George S. Blanchard, USA second lieutenant in the Infantry in 1944. During World War he served with various infantry regiments in the European Theater of Operations. Subsequent assignments included duty as the Executive to the Secretary of the Army (1964-66); Commanding General, 82nd Airborne Division (1970-72); Commanding General, VII Corps (1973-75); and Commander in Chief, US Army Europe (1975-79).
*For a biographical sketch of General Haig,
Retired,

was commissioned

II

193

moving on the ground. The flexibility in long-range artillery and missiles is good for concentration, and our mobility on the ground, the cross-country mobility of our heavy equipment, is about the same as his. So, that criticism is, think, ill-founded. would say that mental agility is more important than physical mobility. The commander who is thinking ahead, leaning forward, figuratively speaking, issuing warning orders, and having everybody right on the tips of their toes ready to move at an instant's notice to one of three or four different places, and a unit commander who can say, "Follow me," and the unit will go with him and be briefed while moving that's the kind of mobility that we need.
the other guy
is
I
I

INTERVIEWER:
doctrinal points.

and important Would you please mention those that you consider to have been significant
Sir,

throughout your career you developed a

lot

of concepts

developments?

World War and say that really was impressed with the fact that we saw the German soldier only on very rare occasions, nor were we able to suppress him very well. So, the first lesson learned was that he was a master at field craft at cover and concealment. Later, when looked at his positions, was impressed by the way he picked positions where his body and his head were protected from frontal fire yet he was able to defend his position no matter what we threw at him. In turn, then, was impressed with our inability to do suppression with indirect fire only. In the early days of the war we didn't use enough direct fire overwatching didn't know that word then for suppression. didn't even know the word "suppression." We used base of fire, but we didn't use enough base of fire and we weren't
I

GEN DEPUY:

think

will just

go

right to

II

organized too well for


I

it.

also

was very much impressed when


fire,
it

watched armored

divisions doing

what they

call

reconnaissance by

armored task force as

which is, swept by

in fact,

suppression
line

watching the fantastic firepower of an


scorched
it

wood

and

just absolutely

with

fire

and received

Bradley Infantry Fighting Vehicle with Bushmaster

194

no return

fire.

So,

suppression; that

am not is why

only a believer
I

massive direct fire have been one of the greatest supporters of the Infantry Fighting
in

suppression, but

am

a believer in

Vehicle with the Bushmaster on

it.

Of course another thing was the great


soldiers.

utility

that you got out of issuing very specific orders to

My

conviction
to

is

that eight or nine out of ten soldiers off the streets need to be told
battlefield.

specifically

what

do on the

The

battlefield

is

a terrifying place.

It

is

an alien

environment for a normal, gentle, human being; most people are not at
will
lot
all

home on

the battlefield,

and would prefer to be elsewhere. If they have the choice between being active and inactive, they be inactive. Still, most of them will do what they are told to do. That tells me that we need a
of instructions going to the soldiers
die
all

the time during battle.


activity of

If

not, nothing will

happen.

It

will

down and

pretty
I

soon there

will

be no

any kind

no

firing,

no movement, no

initiative,

the attack.
that.

was impressed with the fact that the Germans always were talking a lot during You could hear them all the time issuing instructions such as go there, do this, and do On our side there was very little of that. So, what this tells me is that we need a lot of
nothing.

leadership on the battlefield and that that leadership has to be active. Otherwise,

we

will

not get

the soldiers to participate

in

the battle. We'll end up with only that hardcore 10 percent fighting,
is all

and that simply

is

not good enough; but, that


I

we will

get.
is

The other thing


separate mission
figure
it

discovered, which

have already mentioned,


in

that

if

we

give our soldiers a


let

like

we did

with the squads


the utter

the night attack at Maizieres les Metz, and


finally,

them

out for themselves, they just do magnificently. And,

the

last

point that

my European

experience

was

futility

head-on through his killing zone where he is Those were the things really picked up there. When went to the 8th Infantry, in the early 1950s, which was my first command after the war, formalized the overwatch which now has become the doctrine of the US Army in the cavalry, the armor, and the infantry. also formalized the use of frontal cover with the foxholes dig in behind the tree, behind the rock, or pile something up in front of you, and fire at an angle. Be able to see forward if you have to, but don't fight straight forward, otherwise you will be subjected to effective frontal suppression by the enemy and you won't be able to defend your position. The next chance had with troops was with the 30th Infantry, which was the first mechanized battle group in the Army. There learned that armored warfare requires different command techniques than does foot warfare, and that you can move faster and that you should exploit that capability. You need to think ahead. Again, most units have more mobility than they can use; so, you have to have mission-type orders, to move by checkpoints, and you have to have people who are trained to move very rapidly. Also, learned a lot more about suppression while moving.
I I
I

and the homicidal aspects of strong. Vietnam bore that out again, as did Korea.

came out of attacking an enemy

INTERVIEWER:
dissatisfaction?

Sir,

looking

back over your career,

do you

have any regrets or any

GEN DEPUY:
all

Well, that
if

is

a very difficult question.

would do

a lot of things differently.

think

of us

would
I

we had known
is

regret that

have

that
I

had

it

to

do over again,

we either know was very good at teaching. In other words, would spend a little bit more time trying to teach people,
then what
I

or have figured out now. But, the main


I

don't think

think that

if

as opposed to

195

managing or directing them. Now, that is easy to say but maybe it is unrealistic; some officers are very good at teaching while others are not so good. think that might have been able to propagate my ideas more effectively if had been a little more patient with people and spent a little more time with them instead of being in such a bloody hurry. Looking back throughout all of my time in the Army, that's the one great regret have.
I I

INTERVIEWER:

General Hackett's book, The Third World War,

lists

you as a contributor. Would

you discuss your involvement with that book?*

GEN DEPUY:
a letter
in

Well,

don't think

and

told

me that friends of
I

writing a book. At that time

violating a confidence with General Hackett. He wrote me had suggested that might help him, or participate with him, don't think it had a title, but he sent me an outline and the outline
I

am

his

simply provided that the Russians would launch a surprise attack and
a very short period of time.

NATO would

be defeated

in

The purpose

of the

book was

to alert the

problem and thus, hopefully, induce them to greater efforts


on.
I

governments of Europe to the more money, more troops, and so

wrote back and


that
it

told

him that

had spent a number of years convincing or trying to convince,


if it

our

Army
I

could fight and win

fought the right way, and that


I

associate myself with a book describing the defeat of our troops.

really

want to couldn't walk away from


I

really didn't

what had been doing over the

last several years.

General Hackett wrote back and said that General Benecke of the

Commander
that
it

in

Chief, Allied Forces Central

German Army, a former Europe, had had somewhat the same reaction and as a
is

consequence, he was going to change the approach. ends with


a situation that

many people say


I

you have read the book you will notice very improbable. He has been criticized for
If

no defeat was inflicted on NATO. felt that a defeat would be bad for the morale of the soldiers and would not inspire the Dutch, the Danes, the Belgians, or the British, to spend more; rather, it would make it all seem even more hopeless. In any event, then did send him some notes
that. But,
I

and suggestions, some of which found their way into the chapter on V Corps. He and his colleagues, whoever they are, then turned it into an exciting battle story. You will notice that the tactics contained in the book are FM 100-5, 71-1 and 71-2 tactics, and that the corps commander becomes the USAREUR commander. That was his idea, not mine, but it was a good one. So, that's the background.
,

INTERVIEWER: One final question. After several Army development program look from the outside?

years of working with industry,

how does

the

mean that the weapon systems The short answer is frustrating. By that, acquisition process and structure are so enormously complex that industry finds it difficult to cope. The decision-making process is diversified and obscure. From inside it looked orderly and logical. From outside, it looks chaotic. For example, it is true that eventually decisions are made at or near the top by the ASARCS (Army Systems Acquisition Review Council), the DSARCS (Defense Systems Acquisition Review Council), congressional committess, or sometimes, willful
I

GEN DEPUY:

individuals

such as the Vice Chiefs of

Staff, assistant secretaries,

under secretaries, etcetera. But,


1978).

General Sir John Hackett, The Third World War: August 1985

(New York: MacMillan,

196

industry

is

incredibly well-informed through a penetrating intelligence network, about the


all,

shape

and origin of the papers and studies upon which the decision-makers act. After

the decision-

makers are only as smart as the information they have. The information they have is carefully managed and metered by the staff agencies and commands upon which they depend. They are
almost
totally at the

internal

workings and biases. This

mercy of these information sources which, in turn, are vulnerable to their own is the endemic disease of large bureaucracies. know because
I I

have been victimized many times by that system.


Let

me

give you a typical example.


it

When

the development

community launches

new

effort or

proposal,

knows

that

it

must show decisive improvement over the older model with the same

function, e.g., the old scout helicopter versus the

new scout

helicopter, etcetera.

A common

argument is that the old model has reached its technological limits and it is now necessary to start from scratch. The amusing (a cynical choice of words) fact is, that just as soon as the new model is securely lodged in the program and budget, the development community discovers marvelous

ways

of improving the older system.


fair

You can

bet your farm that the product-improved older

system was not given a


regard to the

comparative evaluation during the decision-making process with

new replacement

comparative that

is,

from a cost effectiveness standpoint.

Now,

this

"information" on the lack of growth potential for the old system

engineers and managers

so without jeopardizing

who suddenly saw all kinds of options five years the new product. call your attention to the M48A5 and M60A3
I

came from the same later when they could do


tanks as
it

product improvements that flourished after the M-1 Abrams tank


important to acknowledge that

was

secure.

In this

case

is

chobham armor developments


of

did require a

new

tank.

Another
by the

example

is

the AH-1

D Cobra

attack helicopter versus earlier efforts to develop a light experimental

helicopter.

The

vulnerability

decision-makers

to

the

information

control

held

development agencies is never higher than when the development agency is pushing its own design against all comers. The development commands compete with industry when they organize around some particular technology and push it through the decision process from an
"insider's" position.

The

materiel

command

agencies are

in

the unique position of being the

prosecutor, judge, and jury against any threatening competitor.

My

advice to the

Army

Materiel

Command
is its
it

is

to disqualify the

development command as an
it

evaluative agency

which, by the way,

primary function

when
in
I

has

its

own
The

horse

in

the race.

Being composed of humans,


it

is
is

only too humanoid

its

biases.

kind of
I

"information"
then would be

supplies the decision-makers


a contest in

often downright sinful.

could give examples but

which the "information" given to the high command in refutation of my charge would come from the accused. Thus, we then would re-enact the venal process one more time. In addition to disqualifying the government's development agencies as evaluators of their competitors one more step is essential. Industry must be afforded open channels to the decision-makers. These by-pass channels are essential to give decision-makers a balanced
in

information diet. Of course industry

will

put

its

best foot forward. Of course

it

will

bias

its

presentations. But, decision-makers need to hear opposite views and by-side evaluations

when

possible, call for side-

fly-offs, shoot-offs, etcetera. Industry


is in

tends to see the services as follows:


its

the
its

Navy owns

its

contractors; the Air Force

cahoots with
for

contractors; and the

Army fears

contractors. Overstated? Sure! But close

enough

government work.

197

INTERVIEWER:

Well,

believe that

sums up what we

set out to do.

GEN DEPUY:
good
luck

want to thank you and happy service.


I

for taking the time

and trouble to do

all

of this.

wish you both

Retirement review

in

honor of General DePuy, 30 June 1977.

198

1985

AFTERTHOUGHTS

When
me

published he also asked

me that this oral history would be had anything to add. Reading back over the manuscript it seemed to that some subjects were not adequately or fairly covered because of the conversational
the director of the Military History Institute informed
if
I

method and the


years
later.
first

interaction of the participants. In short,


else.

some important

subjects were dropped

in

midcourse as our attention turned to something

Thus, these afterthoughts recorded


Recently

five

The

topic on

which

have some afterthoughts

is

tactical doctrine.

have given
has been

vent to

my

concern that "maneuver doctrine" has been oversimplified and that a basically good
in

idea stands

danger of being corrupted by the


central thoughts
in

uncritical

enthusiasm with which


in

it

surrounded.

My

on

this subject are

exposed

an

article,

"Toward
I

Balanced

Doctrine," contained
here.*

the

November 1984

issue of

Army

magazine, so

won't repeat them

second afterthought
I

is

related to the issue of


in

weapons technology.

It

concerns the vast mis-

understanding which

perceive

respect to the impact of technology on tactics.

Few

subjects

have been the target of such loose thinking.

On

the other hand, nothing could be more important.

First, let me say that the so-called Congressional Reform Movement has been the source of nonstop rubbish on this subject. Unfortunately, they have apparently convinced a large number of

otherwise sensible people that high technology


truths

is

the enemy. They have taken

some obvious

argument abruptly to the big lie. No reasonable man favors "runaway" that won't work, costs that cannot be borne, or machinery that demands skills not to be found in the military population. A description of the dark side of the military weapons development program, the worst examples, have been airily ascribed to the whole sincere and difficult search for excellence in the equipment to be provided the US Armed Forces forces faced with formidable opponents worldwide, opponents who do not themselves shrink from high technology. Much of the argument would be ludicrous were it not so dangerous. For example, some of the more feverish reformers yearn for the good old days of "low-tech" when our forces were equipped with P-51 fighters and SHERMAN Tanks. In their time, of course, P-51s and SHERMANS were high-tech. But, the baleful effects do not stop with such limited damage. These same worthies have managed to associate high technology with "attrition warfare". Whole battalions of impressionable minds have signed up for these mental gymnastics, this "disarming"

and moved

their

technology

weapons

concept.

crowd loves maneuver warfare a concept of fighting which demands the highest technology man can design. The very systems of mobility (M1 Abrams tank, M2 Bradley fighting vehicle, M3 Scout vehicle, AH64 Attack helicopter, and UH60 Blackhawk utility helicopter), firepower (smart munitions and long range delivery systems),
At the same time, the
anti high-tech
*William
E.

DePuy, "Toward

Balanced Doctrine (Synchronization

in

Maneuver Doctrine)," Army, (November,

1984), 18-21.

199

intelligence (airborne sensors


radios,

and analysis centers), and C 2 (satellite communications, graphic aids to decision making), upon which a maneuver doctrine utterly depends,

cellular
is

a fair

inventory of the very highest technology.

American science and technology for decisive military purposes. in American lives and treasure? The Army has gone after this objective through the "Concept Based Requirements System". It supposes that the weapons systems acquisition process starts, or should start, with military requirements derived from operational concepts. This puts the conceptual people at the head of the line, that is, in the number one spot in a linear sequence. [See Chart, page 201] This is not a bad concept except for one thing. It doesn't work that way. Operational concepts have never been able to "get out front." If you read them carefully Airland Battle 2000, Army 21, Focus-21, and so on, you will find that they are, in fact, a description of the application of currently understood technology within the mainstream of tactical evolution. Ideas about air mobility followed the helicopter, they did not precede it! Go back and read Gavin's "Cavalry And Don't Mean Horses" in the '50s, in Army magazine.* Deep attack, Follow on Forces Attack, and Assault Breaker, followed the discovery that we could make smart munitions. There are virtually no exceptions to this sequence. The technology comes first and then the applications, applications that are conditioned and constrained by the
real issue is

The

how

to exploit

How

can

we

defeat our enemies quickly with the least cost

tactical
It

concepts, follow.

is

important to understand and accept this relationship. But, the thought goes farther. The

between the research community, the developers and the users, is clearly circular. That is, the relationship is interactive and continuously so. As with all circles, there is no point of origin and no end point. Research is not conducted without an awareness of potential applications. Development of those applications is not undertaken in an employment vacuum. Concepts of employment are a synthesis of tactical experience and new technical capabilities. Unfortunately, the circular imperative collides with the linearity of our organizations and procedures, particularly with the rigid temporal linearity of the program and budget process. Every element or link in the chain yearns for the orderly, simple, linear process. The user states a "military" requirement and the research and development community follows orders. How naive! It is the feedback loops between the creators (researchers), applicators (developers), and exploiters (tactical users), that are critical and enormously difficult to achieve. Linearity hates feedback loops. They interrupt the smooth flow of the program and funding process. They embarrass the user who changes his performance specifications. They cause cost overruns and
relationship

change
I

test criteria.

see no easy

way

out of the dilemma.

It

calls for

an appreciation of the complexity of the

relationship

and constant vigilance. Let

me

cite

Mechanized Infantry Combat Vehicle later interrupted and delayed, and cost increases occurred when the users finally realized after testing that the fighting vehicle needed a two-man turret instead of the original one-man version. The change was made. The developer was mad at the user, and Congress was mad at everybody. Yet, it was exactly the right thing to do. This change was the product of a circular, not a linear process.
*James M. Gavin, "Cavalry, Journal, 4 (June 1954), 22-27.

two examples, one good and one bad. The known as the M2 Bradley program was

And

Don't

Mean Horses," Armor, 68 (May-June,

1954), 18-22;

and Combat Forces

200

CONCEPT BASED REQUIREMENTS SYSTEM


ARMY
MISSIONS
|

DOCTRINE

BDP
u
ii

HISTORICAL

ORGANIZATION

STUDIES

} -|CONCEPTS|
STUDIES

MAA
-r
TRAINING

THREAT

& WAR
TECHNOLOGY

GAMES

j
it

materiel"]

In

the case of the division


tests later, that the

air

defense weapon system,

and

guns alone could not do the

became apparent through analysis first, whole job. The circular feedback loop cried

for the addition of a light missile like

STINGER.

But, the orderly forces of linearity prevailed

backs were stiffened, necks were bowed, and the


aren't smart

Army

has a troubled system.

Human

beings

enough

to

move

operational concepts

beyond the
will

state-of-the-art. People aren't

smart enough to antic/pate the kinds of information that

begin to flow to them from the

feedback loops during research development and exploitation.

Remember "fly before buy," independent testing, and independent cost analysis? Well, to date, management has failed. They should start all over again and accept the circular process. After all, it is easier to move on a wheel than a skid. A stone boat was a linear concept.
tried

Management has

to

build

fail-safe

linear

system.

The
think
I

third

and

last

afterthought pertains to the soldier. Reading back over the transcript

don't
a fair
it

gave the

soldier

the private soldiers and the junior

NCOs
best of

in

World War

II

in

representation.

You

recall

said that only a small fraction did the fighting. That

was

true, but

was
army

the product of untrained leaders at every level.

To the

my

knowledge,

every

and

my German and
The
rest
In

Israeli

friends verify this point

only a few

men

are natural,

aggressive fighters.
leaders
infantry

respond only to firm, sensible leadership.


in

When
in

casualties are high,

go

first.

the six weeks


officers

Normandy

the 90th Division ran through


total

two

to five sets of

company

150 percent of the

number

of officers

the division, which

represented about 2,000 men. This had two effects.

First,

these junior officers never had time to

season, and second, their training

was mechanical and

technical rather than tactical.

The

training

never did improve, but as the war went on a few survivors accumulated
luck

some seasoning through


rates

and natural cunning. Once the meat grinder of Normandy was broken up, the casualty

201

went down and the reciprocal seasoning rates went up. By the midpoint of the war we had a fair number of smart, tough fighters. Troop performance improved along a parallel path. By the end of the war the 90th was a good division, not brilliant, but good as good as one could expect, and
better than most.

General McLain, a splendid officer, told us


with the 90th Division except for
divisions,
its

when he
The

first

arrived that there

was nothing wrong

leaders.

troops, he said,

were

just like those in the best

and he was

right.

Therefore, the secret to success

lies in

the selection and training of

leaders before the

first

battle so that the seasoning process


in

can stay ahead of the casualty

process.

When

the opposite happens, as


is

the case of the 90th Division, a

downward

spiral

occurs and the resultant disaster


contribution to the

producer of mass casualties without any offsetting


Division

war

effort. In

Normandy, the 90th

was

a killing

machine

of our

own
I

troops!

This leads to the crucial question as to what has been done to avoid a repetition of this process.

am happy

to be able to say that the present officer selection


II.

ahead of the "peoples' army" of World War Vietnam War.


First,

It

is

and training process is light years also miles ahead of the process used during the

the

Army now

selects

its

battalion

quality officers through a centralized process.


is

and brigade commanders from among its highest The difference in performance, even in peacetime,
higher plateau of effectiveness and the

startling.

Second,

training has

been moved

to a

new and much

massive change goes to General Paul Gorman, the Deputy Chief of Staff for Training at TRADOC from 1974 to 1977. To Gorman goes revolutionary the credit for moving from time oriented training "In the next hour we will discuss the platoon in the attack, or the operation of the PRC-77 radio, or the M-1 rifle" to performance based training "At the completion of this demonstration you will be required to place the PRC-77 into operation in the proper manner. If you cannot perform this function you will repeat the
credit for the conceptualization of that

instruction

on an individual basis."
I

From World War


division

until

1975, the

Army

followed the

Army

Training Program which carried a


battalion, regiment or brigade,
this

from individual training through squad, platoon, company,


in

and so many hours for that. Men and units proceeded through the program whether they learned or not. Frankly, nobody knew. There were few tests and what there were, were subjective. If you could survive the schedule you were presumed to be trained. The heart of the Gorman revolution was that no soldier proceeded to Step 2 until he had demonstrated satisfactory hands-on performance of Step 1. This same procedure was applied to units. The concept led to the soldiers' manuals, Skill Qualification Tests, and the Army Training and Evaluation Program. Gorman was also the conceptualizer of the National Training Center and of advanced simulation and simulator development throughout the Army. My net assessment of the effect of these two vital programs leader selection and performance training is that the performance and battle participation level of the American
to division,

each arm or service on the basis of so many hours for

Army
In

has

moved from
the whole

the 20 percent to the 60 percent level and

is

rising.

fact,

Army

in

every department
in

is

in

great shape.

The

soldiers,

by every

measurement, are the best the country has seen

its

Army and

vastly better than during the

202

draft.

Officers

are

better
in

trained

and more

carefully

selected
Individual

for

command. NCOs

are

progressively trained

their

own

education system.

performance

as

in

tank
is

gunnery

has never been higher. Unit performance because of such programs as the
in

NTC

the highest ever achieved

peacetime Army. The new doctrine


in
is

is

superior to the old and the


of the
It is

whole Army
portrayed
in

is

intellectually

engaged

that collective enterprise.

The image

Army

as

the press and on television

radically out of step with the realities.

too bad that

the American public does not

know what

a fine

Army
in its

they have. Perhaps they are beginning to


It is

appreciate the higher quality of this

critically

important institution.

not perfect.

It is

sometimes

hard to love. But


It

it

is

solid

and honest and sincere


observation

unremitting efforts to achieve excellence.

will

serve the country well.

and a career. The Army has been good to me. It has given me an exciting and satisfying life a purpose and a fulfillment. The common caricature of military life is one of stultifying regimentation, a narrow and confining life, and a numbing boredom. Perhaps we shouldn't let the secret out that this
This brings
to
last

me

my

word about the Army as an

institution

caricature

is

not only wrong but

is, in

fact, a reversal of the facts.

My

experience

and opinion,
is

particularly

after

observing

the

great

American

industrial

more degrees of freedom in a military career than one could find outside with rare exceptions. The distinguishing characteristic of a command position AT ANY LEVEL is that the incumbent is ON HIS OWN. If he expects to have his hand held it won't happen. The higher the command the more total is the veil of silence which descends upon the commander. He is given all the elbow room he needs to put the stamp of his own convictions and capabilities on the enterprise over which he presides. He also has enough rope to hang himself should he be inadequate to the challenge. The difference in style and substance between two military commands is as great or greater than that between any two civilian enterprises, and the differences flow from the man in charge. My advice to the serving officer is to think long and hard before jumping into the "Greener Pastures" on the other side of the fence. You are now in the most productive years of your life in the most important business in the country, and you will find few opportunities on the outside to match those which you take for granted in the Army.
establishment at close hand,
that there are

203

INDEX
Abrams, Creighton W. GEN:
Active Defense: 63,192-193
63, 149

Agency for
All

International

Development (AID): 123-124,

126, 134, 164

Volunteer Army: 103


142

ApTauO, Battle of: Armies, US


Third: 40

Army War

College (AWC): 185-186

Association of the

US Army (AUSA):

113

ATTLEBORO,
Barth,

Operation: 144, 146


17, 35, 41, 52, 61,

George Bittman, MG:

98-99

Beau Coudray: 31-32,35-36,39-40


BinhGia: 131
Blanchard, George S. GEN: 71
Bradley,

Omar

N.

GEN: 35,41

Bulge, Battle of: 45, 58, 68, 84

Camps, US Army
Barkley: 7, 12
Granite: 8

Cavalry Divisions,
1st:

US

133-135, 148

Cavalry Regiments,
4th: 142, 157

US
Agency
(CIA):
105, 118, 123, 126-127, 164

Central Intelligence

Central Office for South Vietnam

(COSVN): 130

Chambois: 49
Civil

Operations and Revolutionary Development Support (CORDS): 164-165

Close Air Support: 82


Colonel "X": 52

Combat Decorations: 91-93,155 Combat Developments Command (CDC):

177-178, 181

Command and

Control: 76-77, 84, 93, 96-97, 140-141, 150, 153-154, 192

Concept Based Requirements System: 200-201 Congressional Reform Movement: 199


Continental

Army Command (CONARC):


109, 195
E.

175-179, 183

DePuy Foxhole:
DePuy, William
childhood:
father of:
1

1,2
of:
1

grandfather

1,2

mother

of:

205

as an

ROTC

Candidate:

2, 4,

as a college student: 3
at Desert Training Center:

10-11

great-grandfather

of:

as a Communications Officer: 5,7 as a battalion

commander: 52

as a student at Fort Leavenworth: 102


in in in

Hungary: 103
the Central Intelligence Agency: 105
the Chief of Staff's Office: 112

as a division

commander: 137-167

as a Special Assistant for Counterinsurgency (JCS): 168-171 as Assistant Vice as

TRADOC

CSA: 171-179 Commander: 180-192

Engineer Regiments, US, 109th: 3

FalaiseGap: 41,47,49

FM

100-5, Operations:
I.

188-189, 191-192, 196


102, 106-107, 111-112

Forsythe, George
Forts,

LTG:

US Army
5,

Benning:
Dix:

182

12

Knox: 183
Leavenworth: 182, 185-187

Leonard Wood:
Snelling: 94

5,

12

Freund, "Fritz" COL: 127-128


Gold: 88-89

Gorman, Paul GEN: 149-150,


Gourbesville: 24-25

157, 159, 184-185,

202

John GEN: 196 Haig, Alexander M. GEN: 149, 192-193 Hamilton, Edward LTC: 17, 41, 46 Harkins, Paul D. GEN: 121
Hackett, Sir
Harris, Ray: 3

Hedgerows: 13-14,24-31,43 Heintges, John A. LTG: 146


Hollingsworth,

James

F.

LTG: 146, 149

HopTac: 137
Infantry Brigades,

US US

196th:

144, 146

Infantry Divisions,
1st:

40-41, 124, 138-167

2d:

18

206

4th:
9th:

108-109

134

34th: 3 80th: 68

90th: 7-8, 16-18, 35, 54, 63, 72-73, 87, 90 95th: 54,72
Infantry Divisions, Viet
9th:

Cong
Vietnamese

130-131, 138, 142, 144, 150, 163

Infantry Regiments, North


101st:

142

Infantry Regiments,
1st: 5,

US

12

2d:

138, 141, 142, 148

3d: 94
8th: 43, 107-109, 195 16th:

145, 151-152 142, 151

18th:

20th: 5, 12 26th: 43, 157, 167 27th:


28th:

146
138, 142, 144, 157

30th: 43,115-117

63d:

5,

12

357th: 7, 12, 24-25, 32, 36, 46, 52, 72-73

358th: 32,40,49
Infantry Regiments, Viet

Cong

271st:

137

272nd: 137, 142


273rd: 142

Johnson, Harold Johnson, Lyndon


Journalists:

K.

GEN: 163
169-170

B., President:

165

Kerwin, Walter T. "Dutch" GEN: 179

Komer, Robert "Blowtorch": 123-125, 165 Korean Syndrome: 71 Landrum, Eugene M. MG: 31-32
Leadership: 16, 35, 52, 54, 57-58, 61, 90, 114, 152-153, 193-194, 202

LeGro, William COL: 150


Logistics:

151

LoGo,

Battle of:

140
3,

Louisiana Maneuvers:
Maizieres-les-Metz: 58
Marshall, S.L. A. BG:

145, 160

207

Mason, John COL:

41, 52, 58, 61

McLain, Raymond S.
Metz: 68,72-73,84

MG:

16, 31-32, 40, 66-67,

202

McNamara, Roberts.: 171-173


Milburn "Shrimp" LTG: 5
Military Assistance

Command Vietnam (MACV):


Battle of:

121, 123, 125-127, 131, 137-138

Minh Thanh Road,


Murphy, James
P.:

142

Moselle River: 68, 72, 81, 84, 92


3
17-24
173, 177
38, 58, 68, 101, 155

National Guard: 2, 16

Normandy

Invasion:
Jr.,

Palmer, Bruce

Patton, George S.

GEN: GEN:
VC:
138

Pentomic

Division:

112,114
137, 159

Phu

Loi Battalion,

Piburn,
"Pile

Edward MAJ: 3
Tactics":

On

Rogers, Bernard

W. GEN:

113, 149, 151

ROTC: 94-95
Saar River: 54-57,68,72,80-81,84
Schweitzer, Robert
L.

LTG: 164-165
17

Selfridge Department Store:

Sheehy, COL: 35,41,52 Siegfried Line: 54, 76, 92

South Dakota State College: 2

Donn A. GEN: Stilwell Richard GEN:


Starry,
St.

86, 187
32, 99-100, 103, 121, 133

Suzanne: 47

Tactics: 5, 7, 10, 25-26, 30-31, 38-39, 43-45, 66, 68, 71-73, 76, 78-80, 85-87, 91-96, 124, 140,

149-151, 155, 157

Orwin C. LTG: 99, 162, 165 Task Force Weaver: 46 Taylor, Maxwell D. GEN: 112, 118, 123-124, 169
Talbott,

Tet Offensive: 125, 169-170


Training: 8, 11, 13-14, 100, 107-108, 115-116, 183, 186-187, 191, 194-195

Training and Doctrine

Command (TRADOC):
for International

119-120, 175-192
126, 134, 164

United States Agency

Development (USAID): 123-124,

United States Air Force (USAF): 159, 190 United States Information

Agency (USIA): 123-124

United States Marine Corps


Recruiting: 3
in

(USMC)

Vietnam: 131
Fleet,

Van

James A. MG:

32, 66-67, 68, 72, 73

208

Weaver, William G. MG: 80, 97-98 Westmoreland, William C. GEN: 112,

121, 123-124, 127, 130-131, 146, 169-170, 173

Weyand,
Wheeler,

Frederick C.
Earl G.

GEN: 106, GEN: 168-171

144, 146, 163

Wheels Study: 174 Williams, Samual T. "Hanging Sam" MG:


Wilson, Charles

17, 31

MG:

4, 102, 111

YBham:
Y-Tlur:

127-128
127-128

209
tS-U.S.

GOVERNMENT PRINTING OFFICE

1988 - 221-430

QL 3

U 53 .D46 A3 1986

copy

DePuy, William E. 1919-

Changing an Army

MCB 5(170/2

(1/97)

c\

THIS

PLEASE KEEP THIS CARD IN THE BOOK POCKET. BOOK IS DUE ON THE LATEST DATE STAMPED.
.,

t*j

femes Carson
uovinp
fior-

Brecttnridge library
~ inoation Center

Education Command P mm and Corp* u..o 2.',134-505O

Qu&nttco.VA

PIN:

064912-0'

You might also like